![]() | ![]() | ![]() | ![]() |
20 April 2009
PART I
TEXTS WHOSE AUTHORS CAN BE DATED
AUTHORS LISTED CHRONOLOGICALLY
5th through 9th century
[For other time frames, or an alphabetical index, click on the images above.]
194.Author Unknown (400)
1.Kāmāvaraṇaviśuddhisūtra (T.1494; Toh. 218)
195.Author Unknown (400)
1.Mayopamāsamādhisūtra (T.371-372)
196.Author Unknown (400)
1.Nāgaśrīparipṛcchā (T.220(8), 234)
196.1.1 Partly translated in Hobogirin: Dictionnaire encyclopedique du Bouddhisme d'après les sources chinoises et japonaises (ed. Paul Demieville), Second fascicule (Tokyo 1930), 164-166
196.1.2 Partly translated in Conze, SPP 160-164
196A.Kundakunda (400) (NCatIV, 194-195)
1.Aṣṭaprābhṛta (Jain) (NCat I, 450; IV,194)
196A.1.1 Ṣaṭprābhṛta edited by Suryabhanu Vakil. Banaras 1910
196A.1.2 Ṣaṭprābhṛta edited, with Śrutasāgara's commentary, by Pannalala. MDJG 17, 1920, 1989; Somagiri 1989
196A.1.3 Edited by Ramaprasada Jaina. Bombay 1924
196A.1.4 Ṣaṭprābhṛta edited by Nana Ramchandra Nag. Sholapur 1928
196A.1.5 Edited by Sital Prasadji. Madras 1931
196A.1.6 Summarized by A.N.Upadhye in 196A.5.6 below
196A.1.7 Translated by Jagat Prasad. Delhi 1942
196A.1.8 Edited in Prābhṛtasaṃgraha by Kailash Chandra Jain. JJG 9,1960
196A.1.9 Edited by Ravji Chaganbhai Desai. Agas 1969
196A.1.9.1 Edited in Prakrit by Jayacandra Chabara and Mahendra Kumar Jain. Bhavnagar 1974
196A.1.10 Selections edited by Kamal Chand Sogani. Prakrit Bharati Pushpa 42, Jaipur 1987
196A.1.11 Bhāvapāhuda edited and translated by Ajit Prasad. Lucknow 1992
196A.1.12 Edited in Prakrit by Acarya Vidyasagara Suri. Sagara 1992
196A.1.13 Edited in Prakrit by Hukumacandra Bharilla. Jaipur 1994
196A.1.20 Summarized by Ratna Lahiri. EnIndPh10, 2007, 126-138
2.Dvādaśānuprekṣā
See e196A.1.8
196A.2.1 Translated from Prakrit into Sanskrit by Manoharalala Gupta and Nathuram Premi. Bombay 1910
196A.2.2 Edited by Kalacandra Jinadatta Upadhyaya. Belgaum 1912
196A.2.3 Edited and translated by Brahmachari Sital Prasadji, Twelve Meditations by Śrī Kundakunda Āchārya. Madras 1931
196A.2.4 Edited in Prakrit and Sanskrit by Padma Prabhamala Dharideva, Himatlal Jethalal Saha and Maganalal Jain. 1965
196A.2.5 Edited in Prakrit by Balabhadra Jain. New Delhi 1990
196A.2.8 Summary by A.N.Upadhye in 196A.5.6, pp. 37-38, reprinted in EnIndPh10, 2007, 138-139
3.Niyamasāra (Jain) (NCat IV, 195)
See e196A.1.8
196A.3.1 Edited, with Padmaprabhā Maladhārideva's commentary. Jaina Grantharatnakara Kavyalaya, Bombay 1916
196A.3.2 Edited and translated by Uggar Sain and Sital Prasad. SBJ 9, 1931; New Delhi 2006.. Introduction reprinted EpJ 193-198
196A.3.3 Edited by Hiommatlal Jetalal Shah in Prakrit and Sanskrit. Sonagadha, Saurashtra 1965
196A.3.3.5 Edited by Ayka Jnanamati Hastinapura. U.P. 1985
196A.3.4 Edited, with Padmaprabhā Maladhārideva's Tātparyavṛtti, by Hukumamacandra Bharilla. Indore 2000
196A.3.6 Summarized by K.H.Potter in EnIndPh10, 2007, 120-126
4.Pañcāstikāyasāra (Jain) (NCat IV, 195)
See e196A.1.8
196A.4.1 Edited by P.E.Pavolini. GSAIF 14, 1901, 1-40
196A.4.2 Edited, with Amṛtacandra's Tattvadīpikā, Jayasena's Tātparyavṛtti, by Pannalal Bhakliwal. RJSM 3, 1906, 1914
196A.4.3 Edited, with Amṛtacandra's Tattvadīpikā, by Udayalal Kasliwal. Bombay 1916
196A.4.4 Selections translated in J.L.Jaini, Outlines of Jainism. Cambridge 1916, 1940
196A.4.5 Edited and translated by A. Chakravarti. SBJ 3, 1920. Introduction reprinted EpJ 22-73. This with Amṛtacandra's commentary edited by A.N.Upadhye, New Delhi 1971974, 1975
196A.4.6 Summarized in two pages by A.N.Upadhye in 196A.5.6 (below). This reprinted in EnIndPh10, 2007, 95-97
196A.4.7 Edited by Brahmachari Sitalaprasada. Surat 1926
196A.4.9 Edited, with Jayasena's Tātparyavṛtti, by Mannulal Jain. New Delhi 2000
196A.4.12 Kozuyoshi Hatta, "Jain criticism of Buddhist philosophy on stanzas 15-19 of Pañcāstikāyasaṃgraha", JIBSt 55.3, 2007, 40-44
5.Pravacanasāra (Jain) (NCat IV, 195)
See e196A.1.8
196A.5.1 Edited, with Amṛtacandra's Tattvapradīpa and Jayasena's Tātparyavṛtti, by Manoharalala. RJSM 23, 1913
196A.5.2 Books 1-3 translated into Sanskrit by Brahmachari Sitalaprasada. Three volumes. Surat 1923-26
196A.5.3 Summarized and studied by A.N.Upadhye. JainG 25, 1929, 155-165. 31, 1935: 198, 235, 281, 316
196A.5.4 A.N.Upadhye, "The Prakrit dialect of Pravacanasāra, or Jaina Sauraseni", JUBo 2, 1933, 89-96
196A.5.5 Edited by F.W.Thomas and translated, with Amṛtacandra's Tattvapradīpikā, by Barend Faddegon. Cambridge 1935
196A.5.6 Edited and translated, with Amṛtacandra's Tattvapradīpikā, Jayasena's Tātparyavṛtti, with eight page summary, by A.N.Upadhye. RJSM 23, second edition, 1935, 1964. Edition reprinted, with Word-ndex, Ahmedabad 2000
196A.5.7 Edited, with Amṛtacandra's Tattvapradīpikā, by H. Jethlal Shah. Maroth (Rajasthan) 1950
196A.5.8 Selections translated in SIT
196A.5.9 Edited Delhi 1964
196A.5.10 Edited with Amrtacandra's Tattvadipika. Meerut 1979
196A.5.11 Edited in Sanskrit and Prakrit, with Amrtacandra's Tattvapradipaka and Jayasena's Tatparyavrtti, by Sreyasakumara Jaina, Ajita Kumar Sastri and Ratnacanda Mukheta. Sonagiri, Dhatiya 1991
196A.5.11.5 Portions translated in GandS, pp. 139-147
196A.5.12 W.J. Johnson, Harmless souls: karmic bondage and religious change in early Jainism with special reference to Umāsvāti and Kundakunda. Delhi 1995.
196A.5.13 A.N. Upadhye's edition and word-index, edited by K.R. Chandra and Shobhna R. Shah. Ahmedabad 2000.
196A.5.15 Summarized by K.H.Potter, EnIndPh10, 2007, 97-110
6.Samayasāra (Jain) (NCat IV, 195)
See e196A.1.8
196A.6.1 Edited, with Amṛtacandra's Ātmakhyāti and Jayasena's Tātparyavṛtti, by Gajadharalal Jain. SJGM 3, 1914
196A.6.2 Edited by Manoharalala Sastri. Bombay 1916
196A.6.3 Selections translated by J.L.Jaini, Outline of Jainism (Cambridge 1916, 1940)
196A.6.4 Edited by Brahmachari Sitalaprasada. Surat 1918
196A.6.5 Edited, with Śubhacandra's Ṭīkā, by Jayacandra. SJGM 15, 1918
196A.6.6 Edited, with Amṛtacandra's Ātmakhyāti and Jayasena's Tātparyavṛtti, by Manoharalala. RJSM 24, 1919
196A.6.6.5 Edited, with Śubhacandra's Ṭikā, by Pannalal Bakliwal. RJSM 1904-1927
196A.6.7 Edited and translated by J.L.Jaini. SBJ 8, 1930, 1974; also New Delhi 1990. Introduction reprinted EpJ 187-192.
196A.6.8 Summarized in five pages by A.N.Upadhya in 196A.5.6. This reprinted in EnIndPh10, 2007, 110-120
196A.6.9 Edited by Himatlal J. Shah. Sonagarh 1940
196A.6.10 Edited by Nanak Chandra Jain. Rohtak 1941
196A.6.11 Edited and translated by A.Chakravarti, with a commentary based on Amṛtacandra's Ātmakhyāti. Banaras 1950, 1971, 1997, 2001
196A.6.12 Edited by Pannalal Sahityacarya. Varanasi 1969
196A.6.12.1 Edited in Prakrit by Ganesaprasada Varni. 1969
196A.6.13 Edited with Amṛtacandra's Ātmakhyāti and Jayasena's Tātparyavṛtti and editor's commentary by Jayacandra Chavara Jaina. Pannalala 1974
196A.6.13.5 Edited with Śubhacandra's Ṭīkā, in JJG 30, 1977
196A.6.14 B. Vincent Sekhar, "Jaina concept of person--a textual study of Samayasāra of Ācārya Kundakunda", JainJ 25, 1990, 110-118
196A.6.14.1 Edited, with Amrtacandra's Atmakhyati, Jayasena's Tātparyavṛttii, and Aryika Jñanamati's Jñanajyoti, by Aryika Abhayamati. Hastinapur, Meerut 1990
196A.6.14.2 Edited, with Amrtacandra's Atmakhyati, by Nemicandra Patani. Jaipur 1990
196A.6.15 Will J. Johnson, Karmic Bondage and Religious Change in Early Jainism with special reference to Umasvati and Kundakunda. Delhi 1995
196A.6.16 Bansidhar Bhatt, "On the epithet: nātaka for the Samayasāra of Kundakunda", JPAMI 31-462
7.General
See a317.1.84.1. a317.1.178.1. b47.16.119
196A.7.1 V.R.Ramachandra Dikshitar, "Some Jain teachers in Sravana Belgola inscriptions", IC 7, 1940-41, 41-45
196A.7.2 P.B.Desai, "Kundakunda, his domicile", QJMS 46, 1955-56, 1-7. Summarized in PAIOC 17, Summaries 1953, 61-62
196A.7.3 Walther Schubring, "Kundakunda echt und unecht", ZDMG 107, 1957, 557-574
196A.7.4 P.K.Jain, Metaphysical Synthesis: Its Nature and Value as suggested by a Study of the Philosophy of Kundakunda. Agra 1963
196A.7.5 P.K.Jain, "Kapila as seen from the viewpoint of Kundakunda", JainJ 5, 1970, 112-120
196A.7.6 B. Bhatt, "Vyavahāra-naya and niścaya-naya in Kundakunda's works", ZDMG Supplement, 1974, 279-291
196A.7.7 G.V.Tagare, "Date of Kundakunda", JASBo 49-50, 1974-76, 219
196A.7.8 S.M.Shah, "Kundakunda's concept of vyavahāra naya and niścaya naya", ABORI 56, 1975, 105-128
196A.7.9 Hampa Nagarajaiah, "Kundakundācārya--some problems regarding his identity, name and birthplace", JainJ 12, 1978, 93-98
196A.7.9.1 S.M.Shaha, "Kundakunda's contribution to the Jain doctrine of mokṣa and mokṣamārga", CASSt 4, 1978, 27-33
196A.7.10 B.K.Khadabadi, "Kundakundācārya: the literary doyen of Karnatak", Glory of India 3.3, 1979, 7-11
196A.7.10.1 S.M.Shah, "The theory of the two-fold truth according to Gaudapada and Kundakunda", CASSt 5, 1980, 41-48
196A.7.11 Gokul Chandra Jain, "The Prakrit works attributed to Kundakunda: some observations", VIRB 3, 1982, 46-52
196A.7.12 Jyoti Prasad Jain, "Date and place of birth of Śrī Kundakundācārya", JainJ 22, 1987-88, 117-120
196A.7.12.2 M. A. Dhaky, "The date of Kundakunda", AspJ 3, 187-206
196A.7.12.3.K.C.Sogani, "Ethical philosophy of Kundakunda", AspJ 3, 1-9
196A.7.13 Devendra Kumar Jain, "Evolution theory of Kundakunda", JainA 45.1-2, 1992, 10-15
196A.7.14 K.B.Jindal, "Kundakundācārya: his life and works", JainJ 27, 1992, 83-89
196A.7.15 T. V. G. Sastri, "Jain literature and Kundakunda", Jinamanjari 12.2, 1995, 21-24
196A.7.16 Amar Singh Jain, "Path of mokṣa according to Kundakunda", Jinamanjari 18.2, 1998, 21-24
196A.7.17 Bhuvendra Kumar, "Kundakunda: saint scholar and philosopher", Jinamanjari 17, 1998, 30-43
196A.7.17.5 D. S. Baya, "Kundakunda on the conduct of the clergy and the laity", Jinamanjari 20.2, 1999, 17-25
196A.7.18 Sin Fujinaga, "Kundakunda on sarvajña", JIBSt 47.2, 1999, 23-26
196A.7.19 W. J. Johnson, "Kundakunda: two standpoints and the socio-religious function of anekāntavāda", AJSP 101-112
196A.7.20 P. Chenna Reddy, "Kundakundacharya and his contribution to Jain philosophy", JASACFV 78-84
196A.7.21 Christoph Emmerich, "Some remarks on the terminological construction of kāla in Kundakunda", Vasantagaurava 73-84
196A.7.22 Kamal Chand Sogani, "Kundakunda on the modifications (paryāyas) of self and their ethico-spiritual implications", MJS38, 2001, 28-32
196A.7.23 Royce Wiles, "The works of Kundakunda: a connotated listing of editions, translations and studies", Vasantagaurava 183-221
196A.7.25 Jagdish P. Jain, "Jaina philosopher Kundakunda and Vedāntin Śaṃkarācārya", Jinamanjari 25.1, 2002, 46-54
196A.7.26 S.A.Bhuvendra Kumar, "Soul and its functional mechanism in Jainism elucidated by Ācārya Kundakunda (c. 41 B.C.E.), JPASIC 255-266
196A.7.30 Christoph Emmrich, "How many times? Pluralism, dualism or monism in early Jaina temporal description", EJPR 69-88
196A.7.32 Jayendra Soni, "Kundakunda and Umāsvāti on aneikāntavāda", EJPR 25-36
196A.7.35 Jayandra Soni, "Upayoga according to Kundakunda and Umāsvāti", JIP 35, 2007, 299-311
196B.Umāsvāti or Umāsvāmi (400) (NCat II, 396)
1.Tattvārtha(adhigama)sūtra and Bhāṣya (Jain) (NCat VIII, 77-78)
196B.1.1 Sūtras edited in SStotra
196B.1.2 Sūtras edited by Sadasukla. Bombay 1896
196B.1.3 Sūtras edited by Nathuram Lamachu. Lucknow 1897
196B.1.4 Sūtras edited Moradabad 1897
196B.1.5 Sūtras edited Lahore 1900
196B.1.6 Sūtras edited in Jainanityapāṭha (Bombay 1901)
196B.1.7 Sūtras edited in Prakīrṇaka (Ahmedabad 1902)
196B.1.8 Sūtras edited by Candrasena in Jainagranthasaṃgraha (Etawah 1903)
196B.1.9 Edited with autocommentary by Keshavlal Premchand Modi. BI 159, 1903-05
196B.1.10 Sūtras edited in Jainastotrasaṃgraha (Bombay 1904)
196B.1.10.1 Edited with Devanandin's Sarvarthasiddhi. Kolhapur 1904
196B.1.11 Sūtras edited by Jayachandra Sitarama Sravana. Wardha 1905
196B.1.12 Sūtras edited by Pannalal and Vamsidhara in SJGM 1, 1905, 85-86
196B.1.13 Edited and translated into German by Hermann Jacobi. ZDMG 60, 1906: 287-325, 512-551. Reprinted Leipzig 1906
196B.1.14 Edited with autocommentary by Thakkur Prasad Sarma. RJSM 2, 1906
196B.1.15 Sūtras edited by Pannalal Baklival. Bombay 1907, 1922; Calcutta 1916
196B.1.16 Sūtras edited by Ummedsingh Musaddilal Jain in Adhyātmasaṃgraha (Amritsar 1907)
196B.1.17 Sūtras edited by Jivaraj Gotamchand Doshi. Sholapur 1908, 1920, 1948
196B.1.18 Sūtras of Chapter 10 edited, by Dada Babgoda Patil. Sholapur 1909
196B.1.19 Sūtras edited by Virasimha Jaini in Jainārṇava (Etawah 1909)
196B.1.20 Sūtras edited by Chhotelal. Banaras 1912
196B.1.21 Sūtras edited, with Bhaṭṭa Akalaṅka's Tattvārtharājavārttika, by Gajadharalal. SJGM 4, 1913
196B.1.22 Sūtras edited by Nathalal Sobhagchand Dosi. Surat 1915
196B.1.23 Sūtras edited. Ahmedabad 1916
196B.1.25 Sūtras edited, with Vidyānanda's Ślokavārttikālaṃkāra, by Manoharalala Sastri. Bombay 1918
196B.1.26 Sūtras edited and translated by J.L.Jaini, SBJ 2, 1920, 1956, 1984, 1990. Selections from translation in Source Book 252-260. Introduction reprinted in EpJ 17-21.
196B.1.27 Sūtras edited by Pannalal Baklival. Sixth edition. Bombay 1922
196B.1.28 Sūtras edited with autocommentary, Yaśovijaya's Bhāṣya and Vijayodaya Sūri's explanation of the first five sūtras. Ahmedabad 1924
196B.1.29 Sūtras edited with autocommentary and Cirantana Muni's Tattvārthaṭippana. Ahmedabad 1924
196B.1.30 Sūtras edited, with Bhaṭṭa Akalaṅka's Rājavārttika, by Gajadharalal, Makkhan Lal and Sri Lala. Two volumes. Calcutta 1924-29
196B.1.31 Sūtras and autocommentary edited, with Devagupta Sūri's commentary and Siddhasena Gaṇi's Ṭīkā, by Hiralal Rasikdas Kapadia. Two volumes. Bombay 1926-1930
196B.1.32 Sūtras and autocommentary edited by Motilal Ladha. AMP 2, 1926
196B.1.33 Sūtras edited, with Gopāladāsa Bariya's Bhāṣya, by Khubcandra Siddhantasastri. Bombay 1932
196B.1.34 Hiralal Rasikdas Kapadia, "References to the Bauddhas and their philosophy in Umāsvāti's Tattvārthabhāṣya and Siddhasena Gaṇi's commentary to it", ABORI 14, 1932-33: 142, 273
196B.1.35 A.M.Ghatge, "The text of the Tattvārthādhigama Sūtrāṇī", JUBo 4, 1935, 105-111
196B.1.36 Sūtras edited, with Haribhadra Sūri's Laghuvṛtti which is completed by Yaśobhadra. Ratlam 1936
196B.1.37 Sūtras of Chapters 1-2 edited by Vatesvaradayalu Bakevariya Sastri. Delhi 1937
196B.1.37.1 Edited with editor's Vivecana by Sukhlalji Sanghvi. Varanasi 1939, 1976
196B.1.38 Sutras and autocommentary of Chapter Five translated with English commentary in G.R.Jain, Cosmology Old and New. SBJ 13, 1942. Also New Delhi 1975
196B.1.39 Sūtras edited by Kanaka Vijaya Savarakundala. 1942
196B.1.40 Sūtras edited, with Bhāskaranandin's Sukhabodha, by A.S.Sastri. MOLP 84, 1944
196B.1.40.1 Trisutri section edited, with (Vijaya) Lavanya Suri's Prakasika. Bombay 1944, 1991
196B.1.41 Sūtras edited, with Śrutasāgara Sūri's Tattvārthavṛtti, by Mahendra Kumar. JPMJG 4, 1949
196B.1.41.1 Edited with Vidyānanda's Ṭīkā by Manikacandra Kaundeya. Solapur 1949
196B.1.42 Summarized in B.C.Law, "Jaina canonical sūtras (III)", IC 13, 1946, 111-118. Reprinted in B.C.Law, Some Jain Canonical Sūtras (Bombay 1949)
196B.1.43 Sūtras edited by Phulchandra Siddhantasastri. Banaras 1950
196B.1.43.1 Edited Varanasi 1952
196B.1.44 Sūtras edited, with Bhaṭṭa Akalaṅka's Rājavārttika, by Mahendra Kumar Jain. Two volumes, JPMJG 10, 1953; 20, 1957. Reprinted New Delhi 1982
196B.1.45 Sūtras and autocommentary edited, with Yaśovijaya's Vivaraṇa and editor's Gūḍhārthadīpikā, by Vijayadarsana Suri. Bhavnagar 1955
196B.1.45.0 Edited with Devanandin's Sarvarthasiddhi by Phulcandra Siddhantasastrti. Delhi 1955. Reprinted Delhi 1971.
196B.1.45.1 Edited, with a Bhāṣya by an unknown author and Umāsvāti's Praśamarati, by K. P. Mody. BI 158. Calcutta 1959
196B.1.46 Edited by Mohan Lal Jain. Jabalpur 1969
196B.1.47.1 Edited with editor's Dīpikā by Ghasilal Maharaj. 2 volumes. 1973
196B.1.48 Bansidhar Bhatt and Chandrabhai Tripathi, "Tattvārtha studies", ALB 38, 1974, 64-83
196B.1.49 Sūtras edited and translated, with a translation of Sukhlal Sanghvi's commentary, by K.K.Dixit. LDS 44, 1974
196B.1.50 Suzuko Ohira, "Treatment of dhyāna in the Tattvārthādhigamasūtra of Umāsvāti", IndPQ 3, 1975-76, 51-64
196B.1.51 Yensho Kanakura, "A study on the Jaina theory of knowledge", Sambodhi 4.3-4, 1975-76, 1-10
196B.1.53 Suzuko Ohira, "Tattvārthasūtra: verification of praśati", Sambodhi 5.1, 1976-77, 49-63
196B.1.54 Bansidhar Bhatt, "Tattvārtha studies" (summary). ZDMG Supplement 19, 1977, 802-806
196B.1.55 Suzuko Ohira, A Study of the Tattvārthasūtra with Bhāṣya with special reference to authorship and date. LDS 86, 1982
196B.1.56 Chapter Ten translated in Robert J. Zydenbos, Mokṣa in Jainism, according to Umāsvāti. Beitrage fur Sudasien-Forschung (Heidelberg), Bd. 83, Wiesbaden 1983
196B.1.57 M.P.Marathe, "Some amphibious expressions in Umāsvāti", StinJ 83-100.
196B.1.58 Johannes Bronkhorst, "On the chronology of the Tattvārtha Sūtra and some early commentaries", WZKSOA 29, 1985, 155-184
196B.1.59 Edited by Sricandra Surana. Indore 1987
196B.1.60 Piotr Balcerowicz, "Some remarks on the analysis of the sensuous cognition (mati-jñāna) process (Tattvārthādhigama-bhāṣya I. 15)", JainJ 24, 1989-90, 17-20
196B.1.61 Yajneshwar S. Shastri, "Tattvārthādhigamasūtra and Praśamarati: a study", YSS 65-74
196B.1.61.0 Edited Meerut 1991
196B.1.61.1 Edited by Rajesa I. Ahmedabad 1993
196B.1.61.2 M.A. Dhaky, "On the implication of the 'nāgnyaparīṣaha' in the Tattvārthādhigamasūtra", JPAMI 413-420
196B.1.62 Translated as That Which Is with the combined commentaries of Pūjapāda and Siddhasenagani by Nathmal Tatia. San Francisco 1994
196B.1.62.1 Edited by Akhayacandra Sagara. Ahmedabad 1994
196B.1.63 Eiichi Yamaguchi, "Mati in the Tattvārthādhigama", Jinamanjari 13.1, 1996, 19-37
196B.1.64 Edited by Ramajibhai Manikacandra Desai. Jaipur 1996
196B.1.65 Edited by Pradyumnacarya. Delhi 1997
196B.1.66 R. Wiles, "Bibliography on Umasvati/Umasvami, ca. 135-ca. 219 C.E.", JainJ 33, 1998, 130-159
196B.1.66.5 Satya Ranjan Banerjee, "A key-note address on Umāsvāti and his works", JainJ 34, 1999, 61-64
196B.1.67 Chapter Two translated, with Akalaṅka's Rajavārttika, in N. L. Jain, Biology in Jaina Treatise on Reals (Biology in Tattvārthasūtras). Varanasi 1999
196B.1.69 Chapter Five translated in N. L. Jain, The Jaina World of Non-living (The Non-living in Tattvārthasūtra). Varanasi 2000
196B.1.74 K. Vasudeva Rao, "Umāsvāti's Tattvārthasūtra: some remarks on its contents", JICPR 19.4, 2002, 47-64
196B.1.78 Padmanabh S. Jaini, "Umāsvāti on the quality of sukha", JIP 31, 2003, 613-664
196B.1.80 K. Vasudeva Rao, "Umāsvāti's Tattvārthasūtra: contents and contentions", BhV 64.2, 2004, 37-51
196B.1.81 N . L. Jain, "Studies on biology in Tattvārthasūtra (Formulae on Reals)", Nandanavana 148-167
196B.1.81.5 Editedand traslated b Chaganlala Jain. Ujjain 2006
196B.1.82 Sūtra summarized by K. K. Dixit, EnIndPh10, 2006, 47-66, and Bhāṣya summarized by K.K.Dixit, in EnIndPh10, 2007, 71-94.
2.Praśamaratiprakaraṇa
See a196B.1:45.1, 61
196B.2.0 Edited Ahmedabad 1903
196B.2.0.1 Edited by Karpuravijayaji. Mahesana 1909
196B.2.0.2 Edited with Jinadāsagaṇi's Avacūri. Bombay 1910
196B.2.0.3 Edited in Roman characters and translated into Italian by A. Ballini. GSAIF 25, 1912, 117-136; 29, 1918-20, 61 ff.
196B.2.0.4 Edited with Haribhadra Sūri's commentary in S.D.Lalbhai Jain Pustakoddhara Samstha Series 88, Surat 1940
196B.2.0.4.5 Edited with Haribhadra Suri's commentary by Raj Kumar. Bombay 1950
196B.2.0.5 Edited by Nemichandra Maharaj. Delhi 1969
196B.2.1 Edited and translated by Yajneshwar S. Shastri. LDS 107, 1975, 1989
196B.2.1.1 Edited by Rajasekhara Vijaya Maharaja. Patna 1975
196B.2.1.2 Edited by Bhadraguptavijayaji Ganivara. Mahesana 1985
196B.2.1.3 Edited by Moticandra Giridharalala Kapadia. Bombay 1986
196B.2.1.3.1 Edited and translated by Vesna Acimovic as A Bliss in Quiescence according to Umasvati. M.A.Thesis, U. of Washington. 1988
196B.2.1.3.5 Edited by Vaman Mahadeo Kulkarni.and translated by Mahesh Bhagilal. Ahmedabad 1989
196B.2.1.4 Edited with Jinadāsa Gaṇi's Cūrṇī and editor's Ṭīkā by Vijayajinendra Surisvara. Santipur, Saurashtra 1991
196B.2.2 Yajneshwar S. Shastri, "Praśamaratiprakaraṇa and commentaries on it", YSS 53-60
196B.2.4 Summarized by Yajneshwar S. Shastri, EnIndPh10, 2007, 66-70
2A.Śrāvakaprajñapti
196B.2A.1 Edited with Haibhadra Sūri's Vṛtti by Balacandra Sastri. New Delhi 1999
3.General
See b196A.5.12, 196A.6.15, 196A.7:32, 35
196B.3.1 Yajneswar S. Shastri, "Umāsvāti's contribution to Indian philosophy", JainJ 22, 1987, 6-11. Reprinted in YSS 18-32
196B.3.2 M. A. Dhaky, "Umāsvāti in epigraphical literary tradition", JainJ 31, 1996, 47-65
197.Author Unknown (400)
1.Sudhadānarājaparinirvāṇasūtra
198.Śabara(svāmin) (400)
1.Bhāṣya on Jaimini's Mīmāṃsāsūtras
See a22.1:57,67, 88.2. e22.1:2,10,26,74,77,80,81.1,87,89. t22.1.25,46.
198.1.1 G.A.Jacob, "Gleanings from Śabara", JRAS 1914, 297-308
198.1.2 Ganganatha Jha, "A note on the Śabara-Bhāṣya", Dr. Modi Memorial Volume 311-312
198.1.3 G.A.Jacob, "Index to Śabara's Bhāṣya", POWSBSt 2, 1923, 5-28. 3, 1924, 1-39. 6, 1927, 1-18. 7, 1929, 141-166. 8, 1930, 154-169. Reprinted Varanasi 1984
198.1.4 P.V.Kane, "Gleanings from the Bhāṣya of Śabara and the Tantravārttika",
198.1.5 P.V.Kane, "Bhavadāsa and Śabarasvāmin", ABORI 10, 1928-29, 153-154
198.1.5.1 D.V.Garge, "An enlarged version of the Nirukta--discussion on the meaninglessness or otherwise of Vedic mantras in the Śabara Bhāṣya", DCRIB 2, 1940, 139-142
198.1.5.1.5 Othmar Gächter, Hermeneutics and Language in Purva Ṃīmāṃsā: A Study in Śabara Bhāṣya. Delhi 1941, 1983
198.1.5.2 D.V.Garge, "The contributions of the Śababhāṣya to Ṛgveda exegesis or the treatment by Śabara of the Ṛgeveda passages cited in his Bhāṣya", DCRIB 3, 1942, 531-546
198.1.5.3 D.V.Garge, "The contribution of the Śabara Bhāṣya to Ṛgvedic exegesis", DCRIB 4, 1943, 315-328
198.1.5.4 D.V.Garge, "Did Śabara belong to the Maitrāyaṇīya school of the Yajurveda?", DCRIB 4, 1943, 329-339
198.1.5.5 V.M.apte and D.V.Garge, "Mahābhārata citaions in the Śabara-bhāṣya", DCRIB 5, 1944, 221-230
198.1.6 Ganganatha Jha, "Śūnyavāda in Śabara-Bhāṣya", ARCV 162-163 tra (Teil 1)", Ural-altaische Jahrbüer Neue Folge 6, 1986, 76-99
198.1.7 Saileswar Sen, "A puzzle in the Śabarabhāṣya", PO 2.1, 1938, 18-19
198.1.8 D.V.Garge, "The contribution of the Śabara-bhāṣya to Ṛgveda exegesis", BDCRI 3, 1941-42, 531-546. 4, 1942-43, 315-328
198.1.9 G.V.Devasthali, "On the probable date of Śabara-svāmin", ABORI 23, 1942, 84-97
198.1.10 D.V.Garge, "Did Śabara belong to the Maitrāyaṇīya school of the Yajurveda?", BDCRI 4, 1942-43, 329-339
198.1.11 V.M.Apte and D.V.Garge, "Mahābhārata citations in the Śabarabhāṣya", BDCRI 5, 1943-44, 221-230
198.1.12 G.V.Devasthali, "Positive data for the date of Śabarasvāmin", JGJRI 6, 1948-49, 231-240
198.1.12.1 Damodar Vishnu Garge, Citations in Śabara-Bhāṣya (A Study). DCPGRIMS 8, 1952
198.1.13 G.V.Devasthali, "Śabara and the Nyāya-Vaiśeṣika darśana", JOR 18, 1948-49, 16-24
198.1.14 K.Chattopadhyaya, "References to Buddhist philosophy in the Vṛttikāragrantha of Śabarabhāṣya", POS 39, 115-128
198.1.15 G.V.Devasthali, "Simple subsidiary injunction--guṇa-vidhi", OT 2, 1956, 43-84
198.1.16 Fritz Zangenberg, "Śabaraḥ und seine philosophischen Quellen", WZKSOA 7, 1962, 60-77
198.1.17 Madeleine Biardeau, "L'ātman dans le commentaire de Śabarasvāmin", MIMLR 109-125
198.1.18 Edited, with Kumārila's Ślokavārttika and Pārthasārathi Miśra's Nyāyaratnākara, by Gajanana Sastri Musalagamvakara. Volume One. Varanasi 1979
198.1.18.1 J.M.Verpoorten, "Śabara-Bhāṣya III.4.11 (Sūtras 30-3) on the Taittirīya Saṃhita", BhV 41.1-2, 1981, 63-69
198.1.20 D.J.Agrawal (ed.), Mīmāṃsā Uddharaṇa Kośa. The Citations from Śabara-Bhāṣya traced to their original sources. Pune 1985
198.1.21 Edited by E.R.Sreekrishna Sarma. Madras 1989
198.1.21.1 J.M. Verpoorten, "Le comparaison du baton et du porteur de baton dans le Śabara Bhāṣya", Bulletin d'Etudes Indiennes 7-8, 1989-90, 261-283
198.1.21.2 Citrarekha V. Kher, "Buddhism as presented by Śabara in the Śabarabhāṣya", BPBS 343-356
198.1.22 Peter M. Scharf, "Assessing Śabara's arguments for the conclusion that a generic term denotes just a class property", JIP 21, 1993, 1-10
198.1.23 Kiyotaka Yoshimizu, "The means of knowing apūrva in Śabarasvāmin's Bhāṣya", JIBSt 45.1, 1996, 10-14
198.1.24 Irene Wicher, "Der vākyabheda bei Śabara", WZKSOA 43, 1999, 139-166
198.1.25 Sripad Bhat, "A note on Sabara's India", Makaranda 73-82
198.1.27 Kiyataka Yoshimizu, "Change of view on apūrva from Śabarasvāmin to Kamalaśīla", WL 149-166
198.1.35 Jean-Marie Verpoorten, "Le rite d'upāṃśuyājña dans le Śabara-Bhāṣya", IKK 391-406
199.Nāgārjuna (?) (400?)
1.Īśvarakartṛtvanirākaraṇaviṣṇorekakartṛtvanirākaraṇa
199.1.1 Edited by F.W.Thomas, JRAS 1903, 345-349
199.1.2 Edited and translated in Papers of Th. Stcherbatsky (Calcutta 1969, pp. 10-12.
199.1.3 Translated by George Chemparathy. WZKSOA 12-13, 1968-69, 97-99
199.1.4 Summarized by Christian Lindtner. EnIndPh9, 2003, 100-101
200.Vasumitra (405)
1.Samayabhedopacakra (Abhidiharma)
200.1.1 Translated into Russian by A. Vassilieff, Buddizm, ego dogmaty, istorija i literatura (St. Petersburg 1857). This translated into German by A. Schiefner as Der Buddhismus, Seine Dogmen, Geschichte und Literatur (St. Petersubrg 1860), and thence into French as Le Bouddhisme, ses dogmes, son histoire et sa literature (Paris 1865)
200.1.2 Samuel Beal, "The eighteen schools of Buddhism", IA 9, 1880, 299-302
200.1.3 J. Masuda, "Early Indian Buddhist schools", JDL 1, 1920, 1-12
200.1.4 J. Masuda, "Origin and doctrines of early Indian Buddhist schools, a translation of Hsuan-Chwang's version of Vasumitra's treatise", AM 2, 1925, 1-75. Reprinted Leipzig 1925
200.1.5 Translated into German by M. Walleser as Die Sekten des alten Buddhismus (Heidelberg 1927)
200.1.6 Paul Demiéville, "L'origine des sectes bouddhiques d'aprés Paramārtha", MCB 1, 1932, 15-64
200.1.7 Edited by Teramoto Enga and Hiramatsu Tomotsugu, Kyoto 1935
200.1.8 Andre Bareau, "Trois treatisés sur les sectes bouddhiques attribués à Vasumitra, Bhavya et Vinītadeva", JA 242, 1954, 229-266; 244, 1956, 167-200
200.1.9 Summarized by K.H.Potter. EnIndPh9, 2003, 103-107
201.Author Unknown (405)
1.Śuddhodanarājaparinirvāṇasūtra
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 102
201A.Author Unknown (405)
1.Sūtra on the advancement of learning
Cf. EnBudP9, 2003, 102
201B.Author Unknown (405)
1.Sūtra on a pupil who received (seven days) after his death
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 102
201C.Author Unknown (405)
1.Candavatdeśarājasūtra
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 102
201D.Author Unknown (405)
1.Mudrādeśarājasūtra
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 103
201E.Author Unknown (405)
1.Malarājasūtra
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 103
201F.Author Unknown (405)
1.Sūtra on the five (elements) not returning again
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 103
202.Author Unknown (410)
1.Bodhisattvagocaropāyaviṣayavikurvananirdeśasūtra (T.271-272; K. 162)
202.1.1 Michael Zimmerman, "A Mahayanist criticism of Arthaśāstra: the Chapter on Royal Ethics in the Bodhisattvagocaropāya-viṣaya-vikurvaṇa-nirdeśa-sūtra", ARIRSU 11, 1999, 177-212
204.Author Unknown (410)
1.Jyotiṣkasūtra (K.505)
206.Author Unknown (410)
1.Maitrībhāvanāsūtra
207.Author Unknown (410)
1.Rājavādakasūtra (T.514-516; Toh. 221; K.260))
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 103
208.Author Unknown (412)
1.Mahāśrayārthaṛddhimantrasūtra
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 107
209.Nāgārjuna (422)
1.Upāyakauśalyasūtra or Upāyahṛdaya
See a47.16.152.01; 47.16.351.01; 174.10.38.1
209.1.1 Summarized by Vidyabhusana in HIL, 259-261. This reprinted in EnIndPh9, 2003, 107-110
209.1.2 Restored from Chinese to Sanskrit by Giuseppe Tucci in PDBTL, 32 pp.
209.1.3 Yuichi Kajiyama, "On the authorship of the Upāyahṛdaya", StBudEp 107-117
209.1.4 Translated in Mark Tatz, The Skill in Means (Upāyakauślaya) Sūtra. Delhi 1994
209.1.4.1 Mark Tatz, Upayakausalyasutra. Two Tibetan Translations from the Kanjur. Berkeley 1994-95
209.1.5 Shohei Ichimura, "The period of Nāgārjuna and the Fang-pien-hsin-lun or Upāyahīdayaśāstra". JIBSt 43.2, 1995, 20-25
209.1.8 Toshihiko Kimura, "The logic and standpoint of the Upāyahṛdaya", JIBSt 54.3, 2006, 178-179
209A.Author Unknown (422)
1.Kusumasaṃcayasūtra
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 110
210.Buddhaghoṣa (425)
1.Atthasālinī or Dhammasaṅganī-Aṭṭhakathā
See e1.1.10.4
210.1.1 Arnold C. Taylor, "Buddhist Abhidharma", JRAS 1894, 560-561
210.1.2 Edited by Edward Muller. PTS 40, 1897, 1979
210.1.3 Edited in Burmese character. Rangoon 1901, 1920, 1951, 1955, 1986
210.1.4 Edited by U Hpye in Burmese characters. Rangoon 1902
210.1.5 Edited by U Ngwe in Burmese characters. Rangoon 1910
210.1.6 Edited by K. Siddhananda Tissa in Sinhalese characters. Part One. Colombo 1911
210.1.7 Edited by Hsaya Kyi et al. in Burmese characters. Rangoon 1913
210.1.8 Edited by Visuddhacara in Burmese characters. Rangoon 1913
210.1.8.1 Edited in Thai script. Two volumes. Bangkok 1919-20, 1963, 1970, 1979, 1982, 1988
210.1.9 Translated by Pe Maung Tin as The Expositor. Two volumes. PTSTr 8-9, 1920-21. Reprinted London 1958
210.1.10 Edited in Siamese script. Bangkok 1920, 1921, 1988
210.1.10.1 Edited in Sinhalese characters by Wimdadhamma Pannasara. Colombo 1938
210.1.11 Edited by Yagirala Pannananda. Colombo 1940
210.1.12 Edited by P.V.Bapat and R.D.Vadekar. Poona 1942
210.1.13 Nyanaponika, "Die drei Wurzeln des Güten (kuśalamūla) aus Aṭṭhasālinī, dem Kommentar zu Dhammasaṅganī", Einsicht 1950, Heft 1, 14-16
210.1.14 Table summarizing structure of citta and caitta in H.V.Guenther, Philosophy and Psychology in the Abhidharma. Lucknow 1957
210.1.15 Studied by G.H.Sasaki in Bukkyo Shinrigaku no Kenkyu. Tokyo 1960
210.1.16 Edited, with Buddhaghoṣa's other Aṭṭhakathās, by Birbal Sharma. Three volumes. Nalanda 1964-67
210.1.17 Upali Karunaratna, "Aṭṭhasālinī", EnBud 2.3, 1967, 366-368
210.1.18 Edited with Buddhaghoṣa's other Aṭṭhakathās by Mahesh Tiwari. Volume One. Nalanda 1968
210.1.19 Edited by Ram Sankar Tripathi. Pali Granthamala 6, Varanasi 1989
210.1.20 Summarized by K.H.Potter. EnIndPh9, 2003, 173-194
210.1.23 Translated into German bv Nyayaponika, edited by Sven Bretfeld and Rainer Knopf. Oxford 2005
2.Dhātukathā Aṭṭhakathā
See a210.9.16-17. e13.1.1. e210.1:16,18.
210.2.1 Edited by Edmund Rowland Goonaratne. PTS 29, 1892. Reprinted London 1963
210.2.2 Edited in Burmese characters with Buddhaghoṣa's other Aṭṭhakathās by U Hpye, Rangoon 1902
210.2.3 Edited in Burmese characters with Buddhaghoṣa's other Aṭṭhakathās by U Ngwe, Rangoon 1909
210.2.4 Edited in Burmese characters with Buddhaghoṣa's other Aṭṭhakathās by Hsaya Thein. Rangoon 1911, 1912
210.2.5 Edited in Burmese characters with Buddhaghoṣa's other Aṭṭhakathās by Visuddhacara. Rangoon 1911
210.2.6 Edited in Burmese characters with Buddhaghoṣa's other Aṭṭhakathās by Hsaya Kyi et al., Rangoon 1913
210.2.7 Edited in Burmese characters with Buddhaghoṣa's other Aṭṭhakathās by Hsaya Wa. Rangoon 1932
210.2.8 Summarized by Bimala Churn Law. EnIndPh9, 2003, 215
3.Kathāvatthu Aṭṭhakathā
See a210.9.16-17. e8.1:1,5,9,12,15. e210.1:16-18. e210.1:2-7.
210.3.2 Summarized by James P. McDermott. EnIndPh9, 2003, 195-212
4.(Ṭīkā)Paṭṭhāna Aṭṭhakathā
See a210.9.16-17. e5.1.10; 7.1.3.00; 12.1.3; 210.1:16,18. e210.2:2-7
210.4.1 Edited by J. Kashyap. Six volumes. Nalanda 1960
210.4.2 Summarized by Bimala Churn Law. EnIndPh9, 2003, 215
4A.Peṭakopadeśa Aṭṭhakathā
See e17.1.3
5.Puggalapaññati Aṭṭhakathā
See a210.9.16-17. e5.1.4. e210.1:16,18. e210.2:2-7
210.5.1 Edited by Georg Landsberg and Carolyn A.F. Rhys Davids, JPTS 1913-14, 170-254
210.5.2 Summarized by Bimala Churn Law. EnIndPh9, 20203, 215-216
6.Sammohavinodanī or Vibhaṅga Aṭṭhakathā
See e3.1: 2.1, 3.1, 5.2
210.6.1 Edited in Burmese characters. Rangoon 1901
210.6.2 Edited in Burmese characters by U Hpye. Rangoon 1902
210.6.3 Edited in Burmese characters by U Ngwe. Rangoon 1909
210.6.4 Edited in Burmese characters by Hsaya Tin. Rangoon 1912
210.6.5 Edited in Burmese characters by Hsaya Kyi et al., Rangoon 1913
210.6.5.1 Edited in Burmese characters. Rangoon 1915, 1939, 1957, 1960, 1968, 1985
210.6.6 Edited by A.P.Budhadatta. PTS 93, 1923; London 1980
210.6.6.1 Edited in Thai script. Bangkok 1922, 1965, 1989, 1990
210.6.6.1.5 Madhanda Thera, Abhidharmapradīpikā, or a Paraphrase of the Sammohavindinī the commentary on the Viobhaṅgaprakaraṇa. Colombo 1929
210.6.7 Edited by Yagirala Pannananda. Colombo 1932
210.6.7.1 Edited by S. Mookerjee and U. Dhammaratna. Nalanda 1961
210.6.8 Translated by Bhikkhu Nanamoli, Revised by L. S. Cousins, Nyanaponika Mahathera and C.M.M.Shaw as The Dispeller of Delusion. Two volumes. Sacred Books of the Buddhists 40-41, 1987, 1991, 1996
210.6.8.5 Edited Igatpuri 1998
210.6.9 Summarized by Bimala Churn Law. EnIndPh9, 2003, 194-195
7.Visuddhimagga
See a123.1.3.2
210.7.1 J.E.Carpenter, "Visuddhimagga (abstract of contents)" (in Pāli), JPTS 9, 1890, 14-21
210.7.2 Henry C. Warren, "Table of contents of Buddhaghoṣa's Visuddhimagga", JPTS 10, 1891-93, 76-164
210.7.3 Edited by C.A.Seelakhandha as an appendix to HBTSI 1894, 42 pp.
210.7.3.1 Edited in Cambodian, part in Pali, by various editors. Pnomh Penh 1900, 1930, 1946, 1950, 1957, 1970
210.7.3.2 Edited in Thai script, with Dhammapal's Paramatthamanjusa. Krong Thep Maha Nekhon 1900, 1925m 1927
210.7.4 Edited in Burmese characters by U Hpye. Rangoon 1909-10
210.7.5 Edited in Burmese characters by Hsaya Tin. Rangoon 1912
210.7.6 Edited in Burmese characters by Hsaya Kyi et al. Rangoon 1912
210.7.7 Charles R. Lanman, "Buddhaghoṣa's treatise on Buddhism entitled 'The Way of Salvation': analysis of Part One, on morality", Proceedings of the American Academy of Arts and Sciences 49.3, 1913, 149-169
210.7.8 Brief passages translated in Warren 168-170. One passage reprinted in Source Book 279-280
210.7.9 Edited by Pamunuwe Buddhadatta. Colombo 1920
210.7.10 Edited by Carolyn A.F.Rhys Davids. PTS 88-89, 1920. Two volumes
210.7.11 Part 9 translated into German by Nyanatiloka, ZB 4, 1922, 52-56
210.7.12 Translated as The Path of Purity by Pe Maung Tin. PTSTr 11, 17, 21: 1923-31. Three volumes
210.7.13 Part of Chapter 8 translated into German by Nyanatiloka. ZBVG 7, 1926, 75-92; 8, 1928, 31-62, 163-188, 309-338. Reprinted Munich 1931; Konstanz 1952 as Der Weg zur Reinheit.
210.7.14 Part 2, section 5 edited by Nyanatiloka in Pāli-Anthologie und Wörterbuch (Munchen-Neubiberg 1928)
210.7.14.1 Edited, with Dhammapala's Paramatthamanjusa, by Dhammananda. Colombo 1928, 1930
210.7.14.2 Edited in Burmese characters. Rangoon 1928, 1979, 1985-86
210.7.15 B. Semisov, "Matter according to the Visuddhimagga of Buddhaghoṣa and the Abhidhammatthasaṃgaho of Anuruddha" (in Russian). BASR 5, 1930, 319-345
210.7.16 Nalinaksha Dutt, "Buddhist meditation", IHQ 11, 1935, 710-740
210.7.17 Edited by D.N.Kosambi. Bombay 1940; Darnath, Banaras 1943
210.7.18 Summarized in 39 pages in Kashyap
210.7.19 Edited by Henry C. Warren and revised by D.D.Kosambi. HOS 41, 1950; Delhi 1989
210.7.20 R.Subramaniam and S.P.Nainar, "Buddhaghoṣa--his place of birth", JOR 19, 1952, 278-284
210.7.21 Edward Conze, "The meditation on death", MW 29, 1955, 159-163; 30, 1955: 15-18, 54-57. Reprinted in 30YBS 87-104
210.7.22 Translated by Nanamoli as The Path of Purification (Colombo, 1956, 1991, 1997). Selections from this reprinted in Gard. Reprinted Berkeley, Calif. 1976; Seattle, Wash. 1999
210.7.22.1 Translated by D.R.Bhikshu. Two volumes. Varanasi 1956-57
210.7.23 Nyanaponika Thera, "Anattā and nibbāna", Wheel 11, 1958, 29 pp.
210.7.24 U.Dhammaratna, Guide through Visuddhimagga. Varanasi 1964
210.7.25 Edited, with Dhammapāla's Paramatthamañjūṣā, in Pali Granthamala 3. Three volumes. Varanasi 1969-72
210.7.26 Selections edited and translated in Conze, BudMed
210.7.27 H.Saddhatissa, "Nibbāna: ideal aim of the Buddha's teachings", MB 78, 1970, 455-460
210.7.28 Chapter of discussion in Helmut Eimer, Skizzen des Erlösungsweges in Buddhistischen Begriffreihen (Bonn 1976), Chapter 7
210.7.29 Edited by Dwarikadas Sastri. Varanasi 1977; Volume Three, Varanasi 2006
210.7.30 Shanta Ratnayaka, Two Ways of Perfection: Buddhist and Christian. Colombo 1978
210.7.31 Jion Abe, Saṃkhāpaṭṭhajotanī Visuddhimaggacullaṭīkā Śīladhūtāṅga. A Study of the First and Second Chapters of the Viśuddhimagga and its Commentaries. Bhandarkar Oriental Series 15, Poona 1981
210.7.32 Amarasiri Weeraratne, "Visuddhimagga and Vimuttimagga", Buddhist 53.11-12, 1983, 22-24
210.7.33 Damien Keown, "Morality in the Visuddhimagga", JIABS 6.1, 1983, 61-75
210.7.33.1 Theodore Mark Bushong, The Via Mystica and Mystical Experience: A Comparative Study of The Cloud of Unknowing and The Path of Purification (Visuddhimagga). Ph.D.Thesis, Northwestern University 1985; Ann Arbor 1986
210.7.33.2 Richard Gombrich, "Two notes on Visuddhimagga IX", JPTS 12, 1988, 169-172
210.7.34 Lance S. Cousins, "The stages of Christian mysticism and Buddhist purification--Interior Castle of St. Teresa of Avia and the Path of Purification of Buddhaghoṣa", Yogi and Mystic 103-120
210.7.35 Baidyanath Labh, Paññā in Early Buddhism (with special reference to Visuddhimagga). Delhi 1991
210.7.36 Atul N. Sinha, "Buddhaghoṣa on the eradication of defilements", JRS 19.1, 1991, 60-63
210.7.37 Vyanjana, Theravāda Buddhist Ethics with special reference to Viśuddhimagga. Calcutta 1992
210.7.37.4 Sections translated in TMW 43-49
210.7.37.5 Edited Igatpuri 1998. Two volumes.
210.7.38 Summarized by K.H.Potter. EnIndPh9, 2003, 111-173
210.7.39 Gyana Ratna Sraman, "Loving kindness meditation in the Visuddhimagga", JIBSt 23.1, 2004, 15-19
210.7.40 Index to the Viśuddhimagga. Cp. Y. Ousaka and M. Yamazaki. Oxford 2004
210.7.45 David L. McMahan, "Meditation in the Visuddhimagga", EnBuddhism 510-511
210.7.48 Matthew Flickstein, The Meditator's Atlas. A Road Map of the Inner World. Boston 2007
8.Yāmaka Aṭṭhakathā
See a210.9:16-17. e11.1:2,5. e210.1:16,18. e210.2:2-7
210.8.1 Summarized by Karen C. Lang. EnIndPh9, 2003, 212-215
9.General
See t21.1.3. d175.24.30.1
210.9.1 Thomas Foulkes, "Buddhaghoṣa", IA 19, 1890, 105-122
210.9.2 B.C.Law, "A note on Buddhaghoṣa's commentaries", JASBE n.s. 15, 1919, 107-121
210.9.3 B.C.Law, "Buddhaghoṣa's visits to Ceylon and Burma and his reminiscences of the island of Laṅkā", JBRS 8.1, 1923, 29ff.
210.9.3.1 B.C.Law, Life and Work of Buddhaghoṣa. Calcutta Oriental Series 3. Calcutta 1923; Delhi 1976
210.9.4 Pe Maung Tin, "Buddhaghoṣa", JBurmaRS 12, 1922, 14-20
210.9.5 Pe Maung Tin, "La legende de Buddhaghoṣa", JRAS 1923, 265-269
210.9.6 Louis Finot, "The legend of Buddhaghoṣa", JDL 11, 1924, 65-86
210.9.7 T.W.Rhys Davids, "Buddhaghoṣa", ERE 2, 1926, 885-887
210.9.8 B.M.Barua, "Two Buddhaghoṣas", IC 1, 1934-35, 294-295
210.9.8.1 D.D.Kosambi, "On the life of Buddhaghoṣa", IHQ 16, 1940, 871
210.9.9 Adikaram, Early History of Buddhism in Ceylon. Migoda (Puswella) Ceylon 1946
210.9.10 B.C.Law, Buddhaghoṣa, Bombay 1946
210.9.11 Edward Conze, "Buddhaghoṣa's meditation on death", MW 30, 1955: 15, 54
210.9.12 Jothiya Dhirasekera, "Buddhaghoṣa and the tradition of the First Council", UCR 15, 1957, 167-181
210.9.13 N.A.Jayawickrama, "Buddhaghoṣa and the traditional classifications of the Pāli canon", UCR 17, 1959, 1-17
210.9.14 Anand Kasusalyayana, "Pāli authors Nāgasena, Buddhadatta, Buddhaghoṣa, and Dhammapāla", 2500 Years 206-217
210.9.15 P.V.Bapat, Kāraṇa-sampatti. PKGCV II, 6-8
210.9.16 Jnanakirti Sraman, "The commentaries of Buddhaghoṣa", MB 76, 1968, 214-217
210.9.17 Dilip Kumar Banerjee, "The Pāli Aṭṭhakathās--an estimate", SMFV 359-372
210.9.18 D.J.Kalupahana, "Buddhaghoṣa and the definition of 'cause' (paccaya)", Vidyodaya 13, 1970, 170-172
210.9.19 B.C.Law, "Buddhaghoṣa", EnBud 3.3, 1973, 404-417
210.9.20 Noel Sheth, "The 'positions of mastery' and the 'deliverances'", Indica 11, 1974, 23-32
210.9.21 A.Hirakawa, "The meaning of dharma and abhidharma", IEB 159-176
210.9.22 Lallanji Gopal, "Buddhaghoṣa on araghaṭṭa", ITaur 8-9, 1980-81, 187-192
210.9.23 C.V.Udaya Sankara, "The great author of summaries--contribution of Buddhaghoṣa", CBWTC 129-138
210.9.24 Metteyya, "The fetters and Buddhaghoṣa's simile of the calf- pen", SKGIB 73-76
210.9.25 Friedgard Lottermoser, Quoted Verse Passages in the Works of Buddhaghoṣa: Contributions towards the Study of the Lost Sihalaṭṭhakathā Literature. Gottingen 1982
210.9.26 K.R.Norman, "An epithet of nibbāna". in Śramaṇa Vidyā: Studies in Buddhism (Prof. Jagannath Upadhyaya Commemoration Volume (Sarnath 1987), 23-31. Reprinted in KRNCP 3, 193-210.
210.9.26.5 Nobuchiyo Odani, "The transition of dharma-concept in Buddhism from Buddhaghosa to Bu ston", OG 41, 1988, 9-11
210.9.27 Diane Collinson and Robert Wilkinson, Buddhaghoṣa section, 350P, 1994
210.9.28 C.V.Udaya Sankar, "Buddhaghosa's nativity", AHRS 39, 1995, 57-62
210.9.30 Rajesh Ranjan, "Buddhaghosa's interpretation of proper names", PBh 7, 1996, 186-192
210.9.32 Yang Gyu An, "Buddhaghosa's view of the Buddha's lifespan", BS 29, 2000, 129-147
210.9.34 Kate Crosby, "Uddis and Acikh. Buddhaghosa on the inclusion of the Sikkhapada in the Pabbajja ceremony", JIP 28.5-6, 2000, 461-477
210.9.37 Nalini Balbir, "A propos d'une Vie de Buddhaghosa", Bulletin d'Etudes Indiennes 19, 2001, 343-352
210.9.40 John S. Strong, "Buddhaghoṣa", EnB 1, 2001, 75
211.Buddhadatta (425)
1.Abhidhammāvatāra (Theravāda) (NCat I, 289)
211.1.1 Edited, with Buddhadatta's Rūpārūpavibhāga, by Ambulangoda Polvatte Buddhadatta in Buddhadatta's Manuals. PTS 79, 1915, 1928, 1930
211.1.1.5 Edited in Burmese script. Rangoon 1915, 1925
211.1.1.8 Edited with Anuruddha's Nāmarupapariccheda by Polvate Buddhadatta Nayakathera. Colombo 1954
211.1.2 H.S.Cooray, "Abhidhammāvatāra", EnBud 1.1, 1963, 52-53
211.1.2.1 Edited in Khmer script. Bangkok 1970
211.1.2.2 Edited in Burmese script, with Sumangala's, Abhidhammatthavikasini and Tika. Two volumes. Rangoon 1977, 1978
211.1.3 Edited and translated by Mahesh Tiwari. Delhi 1987
211.1.4 Steven Collins, "A Buddhist debate about the self, and remarks on Buddhism in the work of Derek Parfit and Galen Strawson", JIP 25, 1997, 467-493
211.1.4.5 Edited with Anuruddha's Naṃarūpapariccheda and Paramatthavinicchaya and Dharmapāla's Saccasaṅkhepa. Igatpuri 1998
211.1.5 Summarized by Lance S. Cousins in EnIndPh9, 2003, 217-254
2.Rūpārūpavibhāga (Theravāda)
See e211.1.1; 211.1.1:4.5, 8
211.2.1 Binayendra Nath Chaudhury, "Abhidharma terminology in the Rūpārūpavibhāga", OH 27.1, 1979 - 30.2, 1982. Reprinted as CalSktCol Research Series 113, 1983. Includes edition of text. Summary contained in the volume reprinted in EnIndPh9, 2003, 254-255
211.2.2 Edited and translated by Dipak Kumar Barua. MB 100, 1992, 182-198. Reprinted Calcutta 1995
211.2.3 Translated by R. H. B. Exell. JPTS 16, 1992, 1-12
3.General
See a210.9.14
211.3.1 S.Jambunathan, "Buddhadatta", JOR 2, 1928, 111-117
211.3.2 L.R.Goonaratne, "Buddhadatta", EnBud 3.3, 1973, 395-397
211.3.3 Binayendra Chaudhury, "Life and works of Buddhadatta", JDPaliUC 4, 1987-88, 72-80
212.Author Unknown (425)
1.Tarkaśāstra
See a174.12.3
212.1.1 Summarized by Vidyabhusana in HIL 267-269. This reprinted in EnIndPh9, 2003, 256-257
212.1.2 Reconstructed into Sanskrit by Giuseppe Tucci in PDBTL, 80 pp.
212.1.3 Boris Vassilieff, "'Ju-shih Lun'--a logical treatise ascribed to Vasubandhu", BSOAS 8, 1935-37, 1013-1038
212.1.4 Cf. Warder 416-419
213.Author Unknown (425)
1.Bodhisattvabuddhānusmṛtisamādhisūtra (T.414; K.60)
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 107
213A.Samantabhadra (425)
1.Jinaśatālaṃkāra (Jain)(NCat VII, 270-271)
2.Jīvasiddhi (Jain)(NCat VII, 296)
3.Gandhahastimahābhāṣya on Umāsvāti's Tattvārthasūtra (NCat V, 309; VIII, 79-80)
213A.3.1 Āptamīmāṃsā (or Devāgamastotra) section edited, with Vasunandin Siddhāntika's Devāgamavṛtti, by Pannalal and Vamsidhara. SJGM 1, 1905
213A.3.2 Āptamīmāṃsā edited, with Bhaṭṭa Akalaṅka's Aṣṭasatī and Vidyānanda's Āptaparīkṣā, by Gajadharalal Jain. SJGM 7-8, 1914
213A.3.3 Āptamīmāṃsā edited, with Bhaṭṭa Akalaṅka's Aṣṭasatī, Vidyānanda's Aṣṭasāhasrī and Laghusamantabhadra's Viṣamatātparya, by Vamsidhara. Bombay 1915
213A.3.4 Āptamīmāṃsā edited by Jayacandra. Bombay 1923
213A.3.5 Āptamīmāṃsā edited, with Samantabhadra's Yuktyanuśāsana, in SS
213A.3.6 Āptamīmāṃsā edited, with Bhaṭṭa Akalaṅka's Aṣṭasatī, Vidyānanda's Aṣṭasāhasrī, and Yaśovijaya's Tātparyanirṇaya. Ahmedabad 1937
213A.3.6.1 Edited with editor's Tattvadipika by Udaya Chandraq Jain. Varanasi 1975
213A.3.6.2 Edited by Acarya Vidyasagara. Varanasi 1985
213A.3.7 Āptamīmāṃsā edited by Jugal Kishore Mukhtar. Varanasi 1967, 1978; Sonagira Datiya 1989
213A.3.8 Aptamimamsa edited and translated, with an edition of Akalanka's Astasati by Nagin J. Shah. Ahmedabad 1999
213A.3.10 Āptamīmāṃsā edited by Sarathchandra Ghoshal. New Delhi 2002
213A.3.12 Summarized by K.H.Potter. EnIndPh11, 2006, 140-154
4.Yuktyanuśāsana (Jain)
See e213.3.5
213A.4.1 Edited by Pannalal and Vamsidhara. SJGM 1, 1905
213A.4.2 Edited, with Vidyānanda's Ṭīkā, by Indralala and Srilala. MDJG 25, 1919
213A.4.6 Summarized by Ratna Lahiri. EnIndPh11, 2006, 154-158
4A.Svayambhūstotra
213A.4A.1 Edited and translated by Devendra Kkumar Goyal. New Delhi 2000
5.General
213A.5.1 K.B.Pathak, "Śāntarakṣita's reference to Kumārila's attacks on Samantabhadra and Akalaṅkadeva", ABORI 11.2, 1929, 155-164
213A.5.2 K.B.Pathak, "On the date of Samantabhadra", ABORI 11, 1929, 149-154
213A.5.3 Jagalkishor Mukhtar, "Samantabhadra's date and Dr. Pathak", ABORI 15, 1933-34, 67-88
213A.5.4 D.G.Mahajan, "Āchārya Samantabhadra and Pāṭaliputra", JainA 14, 1948, 36-43
213A.5.5 Daya Krishna, "Advaita before Śaṃkara: a discussion by Samantabhadra", JICPR 15.3, 1998, 144-146
213A.5.6 Fujinage Sin, "Determining which Jaina philosopher was the object of Dharmakīrti's criticisms", PEW 50, 2000, 378-384
214.Author Unknown (433)
1.Samantapasādikasūtra (T.1462)
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 257
214.1.1 Studied by M. Takakusu in JRAS 1896, 415-439
214A.Dharmaksèma (385-433)
1.General
214A.1.1 Jinhua Chen, "The Indian Buddhist-missionary Dharmakṣema (385-433): a new dating of his arrival oin Guzang and of his translations", TP 90, 2004, 215-263
215.Ullaṅgha (440)
1.Pratītyasamutpāda
215.1.1 Restored from Chinese to Sanskrit by V.V.Gokhale. Bonn, Frankfurt-am-Main 1930
215.1.2 Summarized by Marek Major. EnIndPh9, 2003, 257-261
216.Author Unknown (440)
1.Anyūnatvāpūrṇatvānirdeśaparivartasūtra (K.490 = T.668 = N.524)
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 261-262
217.Author Unknown (450)
1.Anantamukhapariṣodhanirdeśasūtra (T.310(2))
218.Author Unknown (450)
1.Mahāmāyāsūtra (T.383)
218.1.1 Hubert Durt, "The meeting of the Buddha with Māyā in the Trāyastriṃśa heaven. Examination of the Mahāmāyā Sūtra and its quotations in the Shijiupu (1)", JICPBS 11, 2007, 266-309
218.1.3 Hubert Durt, "The post-nirvāṇa meeting of the Buddha with Mayā: examination of the Mahāmayāsūtra andits quotations in the Shijiapu", JICPBS 12, 20-0-8, 1-35
220.Vātsyāyana or Pakṣilasvāmin (450)
1.(Nyāya)Bhāṣya on Gautama's Nyāyasūtras
See a48.1:96.1, 120. e48.1:4,6,9,14,19,35,36,38,40,48,50,58,67,70,88,92,101. et48.1.51. t48.1:7,25,63,66,98
220.1.1 Ernst Windisch, Über das Nyāyabhāṣya. Leipzig 1888
220.1.2 Satischandra Vidyabhusana, "Vātsyāyana, author of the Nyāyabhāṣya", IA 44, 1915, 82-88
220.1.3 M. Spitzer, Begriffsuntersüchungen zum Nyāyabhāṣya. Kiel 1926
220.1.4 O. Strauss, "Eine alte Formel der Sāṃkhya-Yoga-Philosophie bei Vātsyāyana", BZLGI 358-368
220.1.5 Saileswar Sen, "The nature of śabdapramāṇa in Vātsyāyana's Nyāyabhāṣya", PQ 8, 1932-33, 184-191
220.1.6 Hari Mohan Bhattacharya, "The conception of the soul in the Nyāya system", PQ 11, 1935-36, 156-163
220.1.7 K.S.Ramaswami Sastri, "A note on the date of Vātsyāyana", JOR 13, 1939, 140-142
220.1.8 Sadhu Ram, "References to Sāṃkhya theories in Vātsyāyana's Nyāyabhāṣya", ALB 22.1-2, 1958, 8-24
220.1.9 Bimal Krishna Matilal, "The doctrine of Nyāyābhāsa", CR 152, 1959, 69-73
220.1.10 Anantlal Thakur, "Vātsyāyana and the Vaiśeṣika system", VIJ 1.1, 1963, 78-86
220.1.11 Gerhard R.F. Oberhammer, "Pakṣilasvāmin's introduction to his Nyāyabhāṣya", Asian Studies (Philippines) 2.3, 1964, 302-322
220.1.12 T.K.Gopalaswamy Iyengar, "The place of the Vedas in Vātsyāyana's Nyāyabhāṣya", BKBCV 131-138
220.1.13 Kamalesvar Bhattacharya, "A note on the term yoga in Nyāyabhāṣya and Nyāyavārttika on I.1.29", ITaur 2, 1974, 39-44
220.1.14 Selections translated in HTR 109-110
220.1.15 Summarized by Karl H. Potter. EnIndPh2, 1977, 239-274
220.1.16 S.D.Joshi, "The text of Nyāyabhāṣya on the Nyāyasūtra I.1.5", MO 14, 1981, 21-27
220.1.17 Gerhard Oberhammer, Wahrheit und Transzendenz. Wien 1984
220.1.18 Edited, with Sudarśanācārya's Prasannapadā, by Dwarika Das Shastri. Varanasi 1986
220.1.19 Masanobu Nozawa, "A problem of saṃśaya theory of the early Nyāya-Vaiśeṣika", JIBSt 35.1, 1986, 6-11
220.1.19.5 Portions translated, with passages from Uddyotakara, Śāntarakṣita, and Kamalaśīla, in Matthew Kapstein, Self and aPersonal Identity in Indian Buddhist Scholasticism: a Philosophical Investigation. Ph.D.Thesis, Brown University 1987
220.1.20 Eli Franco and Karin Preisedanz, "Bhavadāsa's interpretation of Mīmāṃsāsūtra I.1.4 and the date of the Nyāyabhāṣya", BIS 8, 1995, 81-86
220.1.21 Ratna Datta Sharma, "Vātsyāyana's threefold procedure of philosophical analysis", EssInP 615-632
220.1.25 Discussed in Anantalal Thakur, ODVS 365-372
220.1.28 Koji Ezaki, "The refutation of the Buddhist theory of momentariness in the Nyāyabhāṣya", JIBSt 55.3, 2007, 238
221.Bhartṛhari (450)
1.Vākyapadīya or Trikāṇḍī and Vṛtti thereon
See a47.16.114; 47.16.114; 221.1.200; 268.10.38; 268.10.9; 369.7.21; 554.4.1; 616.1.4
221.1.1 F.Kielhorn, "The concluding verses of the second or Vākyakāṇḍa of Bhartṛhari's Vākyapadīya", IA 3, 1874, 285-287. Reprinted in Wilhelm Rau (ed.), Franz Kielhorn, Kleine Schriften, mit einer Auswahl der epigraphischen Aufsatze, Wiesbaden 1969
221.1.2 G. Buhler, "Über die Erlklarung des Wortes āgama in Vākyapadīya III.6", ZDMG 36, 1882, 653-654
221.1.3 F.Kielhorn, "On the grammarian Bhartṛhari", IA 12, 1883, 226-227. Reprinted in W.Rau (ed.), Kleine Schriften (see 1 above), 185-186
221.1.4 Edited, with Helārāja's Prakīrṇaprakāśa on Book III and Puṇyarāja's Prakāśa on Books I and II, by Ramakrishna Sastri Patavardhana, Gangadhara Sastri Manavalli, Ramachandra Sastri Kotbhaskara and Gosvami Damodara Sastri. BenSS 6, 2 vols, 1884-1937
221.1.5 K.B.Pathak, "Bhartṛhari and Kumārila", JBBRAS 18, 1890-94, 213-238
221.1.6 K.B.Pathak, "Was Bhartṛhari a Buddhist?", JBBRAS 18, 1890-94, 341-349
221.1.7 Ermenegildo La Tersa, "Su Bhartṛhari", CIDO 12, Roma 1899, Vol. I, Section Inde et Iran, 201-206
221.1.7.5 Edited, with editor's Ambakartrī, by Raghunatha Sarma. Three volumes. SBGM 91, Varanasi 1900, 1963, 1968, 1974.
221.1.8 Edited, with Dravyeśa Jhā Śarmā's Pratyekārthaprakāśikā, by Sitaramacari Sastri. Vrndavana 1926-27; 1983
221.1.9 K.G.Subrahmanyam, "A note on the Vākyapadīya Ṭīkā" JOR 1, 1927, 185-187
221.1.10 Charu Deva Sastri, "Bhartṛhari: a critical study with special reference to the Vākyapadīya and its commentaries", PAIOC 5, 1930, 630-655
221.1.11 M. Ramakrishna Kavi, "The discovery of the author's vṛtti on the Vākyapadīya", JAHRS 4, 1930, 235-241
221.1.12 Brahmakāṇḍa edited, with the Vṛtti and Vṛṣabhadeva's commentary thereon, by Charudeva Sastri. Lahore 1934
221.1.13 Third kāṇḍa edited, with Helārāja's Prakīrṇakaprakāśa, by K.Sambasiva Sastri and L.A.Ravi Varma. TSS 116, 1935; 148, 1942
221.1.14 C.Kunhan Raja, "I-tsing and Bhartṛhari's Vākyapadīya", SKACV 1936, 282-298
221.1.14.1 Jati- and Dravya-samudesas of Book Three edited Calcutta 1936
221.1.15 Brahmakāṇḍa edited, with Narain Datta Tripāṭhi's Prakāśa, by Avadh Bihari Mishra. Govind Book Series 1, Banaras 1937
221.1.16 Brahmakāṇḍa edited by Suryanarayana(sarma) Sukla with editor's commentary. KSS 124, 1937, 1961
221.1.17 V.A.Ramaswami Sastri, "Bhartṛhari a Bauddha?", JAU 6, 1936-37, 65-69. Also PAIOC 7, 1937, 254-257
221.1.18 V.A.Ramaswami Sastri, "Bhartṛhari, a pre-Śaṃkara Advaitin", JAU 8, 1938, 42-53. Also PAIOC 9, 1937, 548-562
221.1.19 O.P.Rangaswami, "Bhartṛhari and Bhāgavṛtti", JOR 11, 1937, 45-50
221.1.20 Book II, Part 2, Section l edited, with the Vṛtti and Puṇyarāja's Ṭīkā, by Charudeva Sastri. Lahore 1939-40; Delhi 1983
221.1.21 K.Madhava Krishna Sharma, "Bhartṛhari not a Buddhist: evidence from nearer home", PO 5, 1940, 1-5
221.1.22 K.Madhava Krishna Sharma, "Bhatṛhari: a great post-Upanishadic intuitionist", AP 11, 1940, 538-539
221.1.23 K.A.Subramania Iyer, "Pratibhā as the meaning of a sentence", PAIOC 10, 1941, 326-332
221.1.24 N. Gopala Pillai, "The conception of time according to Bhartṛhari", Sri Citra (The Sanskrit College Magazine: Trivandrum) 2.2, 1942, 1-6
221.1.25 K. Madhava Krishna Sarma, "Gleaning from the commentaries on the Vākyapadīya", ABORI 23, 1942, 405-412
221.1.25.1 Krishnakanta Mishra, "Bhartṛhari: his life and work", AUM 24, 1946, 73-81
221.1.26 Jambuvijaya Muni, "On the date of Bhartṛhari, the author of the Vākyapadīya", PAIOC 14.1, Summaries 1948, 50-51
221.1.27 H. R. Rangaswami Iyengar, "Bhartṛhari and Diṅnāga", JBBRAS 26, 1951, 147-149
221.1.28 Sadhu Ram, "Bhartṛhari's date", JGJRI 9, 1952, 135-152
221.1.29 V.A.Ramaswami Sastri, "Bhartṛhari as a Mīmāṃsaka", BDCRI 14, 1952, 1-16. Also DCRIB 14, 1952-53, 1-15
221.1.30 Satya Vrat Sastri, "Bhartṛhari's conception of time", PAIOC 17, Summaries 1953, 244. ABORI 39, 1958, 68-78. Revised version in EOI 165-190
221.1.31 J. M. Shukla, "The concept of time according to Bhartṛhari", PAIOC 17, Summaries 1953, 379-384
221.1.32 Jean Filliozat, "À propos de la religion de Bhartṛhari", Silver Jubilee Volume of the Zinbun-Kagaku Kenkyusyo, Kyoto University, 1954, 116-120
221.1.33 Hajime Nakamura, "Tibetan citations of Bhartṛhari's verses and the problem of his date", SIBSY 122-136
221.1.34 V.A.Ramaswami Sastri, "Bhartṛhari's interpretation of 'grahaṃ sammarṣṭi' and 'paśunā yājeta'", JOR 25, 1955-56, 74-78. Also PAIOC 18, 1958, 185-188
221.1.35 Gaurinath Sastri, "Absolute consciousness as Bhartṛhari views it", PAIOC 19, Summaries 1955, 144-145
221.1.36 C.T.Kenghe, "Bhartṛhari's commentary on the Vākyapadīya kārikās: its nature and extent", PAIOC 19, Summaries 1955, 47-48
221.1.37 Gaurinath Sastri, "Philosophy of Bhartṛhari", JASBe 22, 1956, 71-74
221.1.38 Sadhu Ram, "Authorship of some kārikās and fragments ascribed to Bhartṛhari", JGJRI 13, 1956, 51-80
221.1.39 Satya Vrat, "Conception of space (dik) in the Vākyapadīya", JASBe 23, 1957, 21-26. Revised version in EOI 205-215
221.1.40 P.S.Rao, "Bhartṛhari", PB 62, 1957, 347-352
221.1.41 C.Ramachari, "Renunciation, the final import of the Śatakatraya of Bhartṛhari", JMysoreU 18, 1958-59, 13-20
221.1.42 Satya Vrat, "Conception of time according to Bhartṛhari", ABORI 39, 1958, 68-78. Revised EOI 165-190
221.1.43 Gaurinath Sastri, The Philosophy of Word and Meaning. Calcutta 1959
221.1.44 K. Kunjunni Raja, "Bhartṛhari's list of sentence-definitions", PAIOC 21, Summaries 1959, 197-198
221.1.45 Hajime Nakamura, "Bhartṛhari the scholar", IIJ 4, 1960, 282-305
221.1.47 Wilhelm Rau, "Über sechs Handschriften des Vākyapadīya", Oriens 15, 1962, 374-398
221.1.48 E.R.Sreekrsna Sarma, "Some aspects of Bhartṛhari's philosophy", SVUOJ 5, 1962, 37-42
221.1.49 Book Three, part I edited, with Helārāja's commentary, by K.A.Subramania Iyer. DCPGRIMS 21, 1963, 1971
221.1.50 Brahmakāṇḍa edited, with Vṛtti and editor's commentary, by K.A.Subramania Iyer. Varanasi 1963
221.1.52 E.R.Sreekrishna Sarma, "The philosophy of Sanskrit gender", PAIOC 22, Summaries 1963, 127
221.1.53 Hemanta Kumar Ganguli, Philosophy of Logical Construction. Calcutta 1963
221.1.54 Santi Bhiksu Sastri, "Āgamasamuccaya alias Vākyapadīya-brahmakāṇḍa of Bhartṛhari, translated and annotated", WZKM 12.1, 1963, 191-228
221.1.55 Wilhelm Rau, "Handschriften des Vākyapadīya. Zweiter Teil", Oriens 17, 1964, 182-198
221.1.56 Kapila Deva, "Bhartṛhari's discussion on sāmānādhikaraṇya", ALB 28, 1964, 41-54
221.1.57 K.A.Subramania Iyer, "Bhartṛhari on vyākaraṇa as a means of attaining mokṣa", ALB 28, 1964, 112-131. Summary in CIDO 26, Summaries 1964, 129
221.1.58 Kapila Deva, "Bhartṛhari on the relation between upamāna and upameya", VIJ 2, 1964, 87-92. Also IL 25, 1964, 229-233 and Baburam Saksena Felicitation Volume, Poona, 1965, 229-233
221.1.59 Madeleine Biardeau, Théorie de la connaissance et philosophie de la parole dans le brahmanisme classique. Paris 1964
221.1.60 V.A.Subramania Iyer, "Bhartṛhari on apabhraṃśa", VOJ 2, 1964, 242-246
221.1.60.1 Edited with Harivrsabha's Vrtti. Paris 1964
221.1.61 Brahmakāṇḍa translated, with the Vṛtti, by K.A.Subramania Iyer. DCBCSJS 26, Poona 1965
221.1.62 Brahmakāṇḍa edited and translated into French, with the Vṛtti, by Madeleine Biardeau. Paris 1964
221.1.63 Kapil Deva, "Upamāna, upameya and sāmānyavacana according to the Vākyapadīya of Bhartṛhari", VIJ 3, 1965, 19-28
221.1.64 V.Anjaneya Sharma, "The śabdabrahman and the prasthānatrayī", SVUOJ 8, 1965, 31-36
221.1.65 Edited by Vamana Balakrishna Bhagavat. GSPM, Poona 1965
221.1.66 Edited by K.V.Abhyankar and V.P.Limaye. UPSPS 2, Poona 1965
221.1.67 Edited, with Vṛtti and Vṛṣabhadeva's Paddhati, by K.A. Subramania Iyer. DCPGRIMS 32, Poona 1966
221.1.68 K.A.Subrahmania Iyer, "Bhartṛhari on dhvani", ABORI 46, 1966, 49-65
221.1.69 Kapil Dev, "Bhartṛhari on samānādhikaraṇa taddhitavṛtti", PAIOC 23.1, Summaries 1966, 62-65
221.1.70 Hemanta Kumar Ganguly, "Metaphysics of meaning", Anviksa 2.1, 1967, 38-48; 2.2, 1967, 13-24; 3.1, 1968, 61-72; 3.2, 1969, 71-84
221.1.71 Gaurinath Sastri, "Monism of Bhartṛhari", WZKSOA 12-13, 1968-69, 319-323
221.1.72 K.A.Subramania Iyer, "Bhartṛhari on the primary and secondary meanings of words", IL 29.1, 1968, 97-112
221.1.73 Ashok Aklujkar, "Two textual studies of Bhartṛhari", JAOS 89, 1969, 547-562
221.1.74 K.A.Subramania Iyer, Bhartṛhari: A Study of the Vākyapadīya. Poona 1969
221.1.75 Ashok Aklujkar, The Philosophy of Bhartṛhari's Trikāṇḍī. Ph.D.Thesis, Harvard University 1970
221.1.76 Ashok Aklujkar, "Ancient Indian semantics", ABORI 51, 1970, 11-29
221.1.77 Brahmakāṇḍa edited by Satyakama Varma. New Delhi 1970
221.1.78 Kālasamuddeśa section of Book Three translated, with Helārāja's commentary, by P. Sarveswara Sharma.Delhi 1970
221.1.79 Hajime Nakamura, "The concept of Brahman in Bhartṛhari's philosophy", JOR 40-41, 1970-72, 135-150
221.1.80 Books I and II edited and translated by K. Raghavan Pillai. Delhi 1971
221.1.81 Wilhelm Rau, Die Handschriftliche Überlieferung des Vākyapadīya und seiner Kommentare. AMGG 1971.1, Munchen 1971
221.1.82 Ashok Aklujkar, "The number of kārikās in Trikāṇḍī, Book I", JAOS 9, 1971, 510-513
221.1.83 Book III, Part l translated by K.A.Subramania Iyer. DCBCSJS 71, Poona 1971
221.1.84 Ashok Aklujkar, "Nakamura on Bhartṛhari", IIJ 13, 1971, 161-175
221.1.85 Ashok Aklujkar, "The authorship of the Vākyapadīya-Vṛtti", WZKSOA 16, 1972, 181-198
221.1.86 Hajime Nakamura, "Bhartṛhari and Buddhism", JGJRI 22, 1972, 395-406
221.1.87 M.S.Bhat, "Two passages from the Vākyapadīya", JUB 42, 1973, 45-58
221.1.88 John Brough, "I-Ching on the Sanskrit grammarians", BSOAS 37, 1973, 248-260
221.1.89 Hajime Nakamura, "Buddhist influence upon the Vākyapadīya", JGJRI 29, 1973, 367-388
221.1.90 Mithilesh Chaturvedi, "Notes on a kārikā ascribed to Bhartṛhari", JGJRI 29, 1973, 203-210
221.1.91 Book III, Part II edited, with Helārāja's Prakīrṇaprakāśa, by K.A.Subramania Iyer. Poona 1973
221.1.92 Peri Sarvesvara Sharma, "What is the atyadbhutavṛtti (miraculous course of action) in the Vākyapadīya?", VIJ 12, 1974, 351-360
221.1.93 Book III, part II translated, with Helārāja's Prakīrṇaprakāśa, by K.A.Subramania Iyer. Delhi 1974
221.1.94 Albrecht Wezler, "Ein bisher missverstandener Vers in der Vākyapadīyavṛtti", MSS 32, 1974, 159-164
221.1.95 Ashok Aklujkar, "The authorship of the Vākya-kāṇḍa-ṭīkā", CDSFV 165-188
221.1.96 K.A.Subramania Iyer, "Bhartṛhari on taddhita formations involving comparison", CDSFV 241-257
221.1.97 Karunesha Shukla, "Bhartṛhari and Advaitism", PAIOC 27, Summaries 1974, 319
221.1.98 Mithilesh Chaturvedi, "Bhartṛhari on the number of words to be compounded simultaneously", JDSUD 3, 1974, 31-38. Also JGJRI 35.1-2, 1979, 115-130
221.1.99 Mithilesh Chaturvedi, "Kākatālīya--a grammatical analysis by Bhartṛhari", SVUOJ 17, 1974, 93-100
221.1.100 Virendra Shastri, Critical Study of Sambandha Sammudiśya Vākyapadīya in the light of Helārāja's Commentary. Ph.D.Thesis, Kurukshetra University 1975
221.1.101 Virendra Sharma, "Is the eternal verbum of Bhartṛhari a dynamic principle?", VIJ 13, 1975, 337-350
221.1.102 Mithilesh Chaturvedi, "On some formations involving luk-elision", VIJ 13, 1975, 42-49
221.1.102.1 C.L.Prabhakar, "The pathway in Bhartṛhari", BhV 35, 1975, 62-69
221.1.103 Harold G. Coward, Bhartṛhari. Boston 1976
221.1.104 Selections translated in HTR 224-237
221.1.105 Satyakam Varma, "Śabdapūrva yoga", SVSI 1976, 238-247
221.1.106 Satyakama Varma, "Linguistic contents in Vākyapadīya", SVSI 1976, 238-247
221.1.107 Harold G. Coward, "Language as revelation", IndPQ 3, 1976, 224-237
221.1.108 Mithilesh Chaturvedi, "Yugapadādhikaraṇavacana in dvandva--a critical appraisal", VIJ 14, 1976, 82-92
221.1.109 Mithilesh Chaturvedi, "The negative compound in Sanskrit--a semantic analysis by Bhartṛhari", ALB 40, 1976, 1-40
221.1.110 Satyakam Varma, "Tradition and Bhartṛhari", SVSI 1976, 185-200
221.1.111 Satyakam Varma, "Bhartṛhari: works and achievements", SVSI 1976, 201-223
221.1.111.1 Jan E.M. Houben, "Bhartrhari's perspectivism (1): the Vrtti and Bhartrhari's perspectivism in the first kanda of the Vakyapadiya", BOr 317-358
221.1.112 Book II translated by K.A.Subramania Iyer. Delhi 1977, 1983
221.1.113 Edited, with word index, by Wilhelm Rau. AKM 42.4, 1977
221.1.114 Wilhelm Rau, "Zwei neue Vākyapadīya-Handschriften", ZII 2, 1977, 114-123
221.1.115 Wilhelm Rau, "Metrical peculiarities in Bhartṛhari's Vākyapadīya", ABORI 58-59, 1977-78, 263-269
221.1.116 Ashok Aklujkar, "The concluding verses of Bhartṛhari's Vākya-kāṇḍa", ABORI 58-59, 1977-78, 9-26
221.1.117 S.D.Joshi, "Bhartṛhari's concept of pratibhā: a theory on the nature of language acquisition", CVVGP 1977, 71-76
221.1.118 P. Thieme, "Bhartṛhari's Allegorie vom Schiksalwurfelspiel", BIEW 511-522
221.1.119 H.S.Ursekar, "Bhartṛhari and Omar Khayyam", Bhavan's Journal 1977. Reprinted in HSUEI 85-94
221.1.120 Ashok Aklujkar, "The number of verses in Trikāṇḍī, Bk. II", ALB 42, 1978, 142-167
221.1.120.1 Lawrence Ward Davis, Studies in Bhartṛhari's Vākyapadīya. Ph.D.Thesis, University of Massachusetts 1978; Ann Arbor 1980
221.1.121 Ashok Aklujkar, "Emendation of some verses in Bhartṛhari's Trikāṇḍī", WZKSOA 23, 1979, 142-167
221.1.121.0 Hans G. Herzberger and Radika Herzberger, "Bhartrhari's paradox", JIP 9, 1981, 3-82. Reprinted 311-328
221.1.121.1 Sarveshvara Sharma Peri, "The idea of power (śakti) in the Vākyapadīya", BhV 41.1-2, 1981, 75-79
221.1.121.2 Peri Sarvesvara Sharma, "Puṇyarāja's Ṭīkā on the Vākyakāṇḍa of the Vākyapadīya of Bhartṛhari", BhV 42, 1982,1-21
221.1.121.3 Harold Coward, "Time (kāla) in Bhartṛhari's Vākyapadīya", JIP 10, 1982, 277-287
221.1.122 Giovanni Bandini, "Die Erörterung der Person. Bhartṛharis Puruṣārthasamuddeśa and Helārāja's Prakāśa zum ersten Male übersetzt und mit einem Kommentar versehen", ZDMG 132, 1982, 150-173
221.1.122.1 S. Ramaswamy, "Bhartṛhari's Vākyapadīya and Raja Rao's The Writer and the Word", TL 5.1, 1982, 29-37
221.1.122.2 K.A.Subramania Iyer, The Vakyapadiya: Some Problems. Poona 1982
221.1.123 K.Krishnamoorthy, "Bhartṛhari's idea of grammar", JOI 33, 1983, 11-16
221.1.124 R.C.Pande, "Śabda--as presented in the Mahābhāṣyadīpikā of Bhartṛhari" (summary). PAIOC 32, 1984-85, 298
221.1.124.1 Edited by Jayadeva M. Sukla. LDS 98, 1984
221.1.125 Bishnupada Bhattacharya, Bhartṛhari's Vākyapadīya and Linguistic Monism. Poona 1985
221.1.126 K.K.Mishra, "Bhartṛhari's theory of sphoṭa", ITaur 13, 1985-86, 115-122.
221.1.127 Peri Sarvesvara Sharma, "Some problems raised with regard to the concluding verses of the Vākyakāṇḍa of Bhartṛhari's Vākyapadīya", BhV 45-47, 1985-87, 1-12
221.1.128 Alex Wayman, "Bhartṛhari citations in Kamalaśīla's commentary on Tattvasaṃgraha", PWSC 5, 1985, 699-705
221.1.129 Johannes Bronkhorst, "Further remarks on Bhartṛhari's Vedic affiliation", StudIndCult 216-223
221.1.130 Radhika Herzberger, Bhartṛhari and the Buddhists. Studies of Classical India 8. Dordrecht 1986
221.1.130.1 E.R.Sreekrishna Sarma, "Bhartṛhari as an Advaitin", ALB 50, 1986, 579-585
221.1.131 Dipti S. Tripathi, "Apabhraṃśa in Sanskrit grammar: an appraisal of Bhartṛhari's view", AligarhJOS 3, 1986, 81-92
221.1.132 Nandita Bandyopadhyay, Being, Meaning and Proposition: A Comparative Study of Russell and Bhartṛhari. Calcutta 1987
221.1.133 Sarvesvara Sharma Peri, "Eight topics which form the subject-matter of the Vākyapadīya", SII 13-14, 1987, 219-234
221.1.134 Peri Sarvesvara Sarma, "What is apaddhāra in Bhartṛhari's Vākyapadīya", AligarhJOS 4, 1987, 105-118
221.1.135 Johannes Bronkhorst, "Études sur Bhartṛhari, I: L'auteur et la date de la Vṛtti", Bulletin d'Etudes Indiennes 6, 1988, 105-143
221.1.136 Johannes Bronkhorst, "Studies in Bhartṛhari 2.Bhartṛhari und Mīmāṃsā", SII 15, 1989, 101-118
221.1.137 Tandra Patnaik, "Language, thought and communication: an appraisal of Bhartṛhari's theory of language", IndPQ 15.2, 1988, 349-368
221.1.138 Tandra Patnaik, "Some reflections on Bhartṛhari's notion of sentence meaning", VJP 24.2-25.1, 1988, 118-129
221.1.138.1 Wilhelm Rau, Bhartrhari's Vakyapadiya.: Vollstandiger Wortindex zu den mulakarikas. Mainz 1988
221.1.139 Index to Bhartṛhari's Vākyapadīya. Stuttgart 1988
221.1.139.5 D. N. Tiwari, "Concept of time in the philosophy of Bhartṛhari", Darshana 28.1, 1988, 25-36
221.1.140 Ashok Aklujkar, "The number of pramāṇas according to Bhartṛhari", WZKSOA 33, 1989, 151-158
221.1.141 Harold Coward, "Derrida and Bhartṛhari's Vākyapadīya on the origin of language", PEW 39, 1989, 3-16
221.1.141.0 Harold Coward, "The meaning and power of mantras in Bhartṛhari's Vākyapadiyā", UnM 165-176
221.1.141.1 Jan E.M. Houben, "The sequencelessness of the signifier in Bhartṛhari's theory of language", ITaur 15-16, 1989-90, 119-130
221.1.141.2 A. Possi, Bhartrhari sulla sagezza mondane, sull'amore e sulla rinuncia. (Introduction, Italian translation and notes). Milan 1989
221.1.141.3 Gayatree Roth, "Advaita--metaphysical concept in Bhartṛhari and Śaṃkara", VIJ 28, 1990, 121-131
221.1.142 Fernando Tola and Carmen Dragonetti, "Some remarks on Bhartṛhari's concept of pratibhā", JIP 18, 1990, 95-112
221.1.143 Summarized by Ashok Aklujkar. EnIndPh5, 1990, 121-173
221.1.143.1 H.S.Ananthanarayanana, "Bhartṛhari on semantics and pragmatics", BDCRI 51-52, 1991-92, 211-220
221.1.144 Harold C. Coward, "'Speech versus writing' in Derrida and Bhartṛhari", PEW 41, 1991, 141-162
221.1.144.1 R.C.Dwivedi, "Bhartṛhari and Kashmir Śaivism", ABORI 72-73, 1991-92, 95-107
221.1.144.5 Jean Filliozat, "A propos de la religion de Bhartṛhari", Silver Jubilee Volume of the Zinbun Kagaku-Kenkyuso, (Kyoto University, 1954), 116-120. Translated by M. Shukla as "About the religion of Bhartṛhari", RPY 41-46
221.1.145 Bimal Krishna Matilal, "On Bhartṛhari's linguistic insight", SktRelSt 3-14
221.1.145.1 Johannes Bronkhorst, "Bhartṛhari on sphoṭa and universals", AS 45.1, 1991, 5-18
221.1.146 Brahmakanda edited by Shiv Shankar Avasthi. Varanasi 1990
221.1.146.1 Gaurinath Sastri, The Philosophy of Bhartṛhari. Delhi 1991
221.1.147 Wilhelm Rau, Bhartṛhari's Vākyapadīya II. Text des Palmblatt-Handschrift Trivandrum s.N.532 (=A). Mainz 1991
221.1.148 J.E.M.Houben, "Bhartṛhari's samaya/ Helārāja's saṃketa", JIP 20, 1992, 219- 242
221.1.148.5 Jan E. M. Houben, "Bhartṛhari's perspectivism (3): on the structure of the 3rd kāṇḍa of the Vākyapadīya", Sambodhi 18, 1992, 1-32
221.1.149 Johannes Bronkhorst, "Études sur Bhartṛhari, 4.L'absolu dans le Vākyapadīya et son lien avec le Madhyamaka", AS 46.1, 1992, 56-80
221.1.150 Tandra Patnaik, "Intention and convention in communication--understanding Bhartṛhari", IndPQ 19, 1992, 335-356
221.1.151 Translated by K. Subrahmanyam. Delhi 1992
221.1.152 Saroja Bhate and Yashodhara Kar, Word Index to the Vākyapadīya of Bhartṛhari. Delhi 1992
221.1.152.1 Tandra Patnaik, "Word and the world--Bhartṛhari and Diṅnāga", VJP 28.2, 1992, 1-13
221.1.152.2 Fernando Tola and Carmen Dragonetti, "El concepto de intuision (pratibhā) en la filosofia del lanuaje de Bhartṛhari", BAFO 28, 1992, 33-50
221.1.153 Johannes Bronkhorst, "Studies in Bhartṛhari, 5:Bhartṛhari and Vaiśeṣika", AS 47.1, 1993, 75-94
221.1.154 Akikho Akamatsu, "Pratibhā and the meaning of the sentence in Bhatṛhari's Vākyapadīya", AS 47.1, 1993, 37-44
221.1.155 Ashok Aklujkar, "Once again on the authorship of the Trikāṇḍī-Vṛtti", AS 47.1, 1993, 45-58
221.1.155.1 Ashok Aklujkar, "An introduction to the study of Bhartṛhari", AS 47.1, 1993, 7-36
221.1.156 Saroja Bhate, "Bhartṛhari on language and reality", AS 47.1, 1993, 67-74
221.1.156.1 R.C.Dwivedi, "Bhartṛhari and Kashmir Śaivism", Corpus 240-246
221.1.157 Masaaki Hattori, "Kamalaśīla's interpretation of some verses in the Vākyakāṇḍa of Bhartṛhari's Vākyapadīya", AS 47.1, 1993, 135-140
221.1.158 Yoshichika Honda, "Bhatṛhari's definition of kriyā", AS 47.1, 1993, 141-154
221.1.159 Jan Houben, "Who are Bhartṛhari's padadarśins? On the development of Bhartṛhari's philosophy of language", AS 47.1, 1993, 155-170
221.1.160 John D. Kelly, "Meaning and the limits of analysis: Bhartṛhari and the Buddhists, and post-structuralism", AS 47.1, 1993, 171-194
221.1.161 Chr. Lindtner, "Linking up Bhartṛhari and the Bauddhas", AS 47.1, 1993, 195-21
221.1.161.1 Chr. Lindtner, "A note on the Vākyapadīya, 2.484", ALB 57, 1993, 1-6
221.1.162 G.B.Palsule, "Points of agreement and difference between the Vākyapadīya and the Mahābhāṣya-Dīpikā in the matter of sphoṭa", AS 47.1, 1993, 215-220
221.1.163 Anna Radicchi, "Vivakṣā in the Vākyapadīya", AS 47.1, 1993, 221-234
221.1.165 Wilhelm Rau, "A new manuscript of the Vākyapadīya-mūla kārikās", SII 18, 1993, 213-216
221.1.165.1 Johannes Bronkhorst, "Bhartṛhari and Mīmāṃsā", StudinM 371-388
221.1.165.1.1 Johannes Bronkhorst, "The author of the three centuries (Studies in Bhartṛhari, 6)", Vacaspatyam 32-41
221.1.165.2 Harold Coward, "Kumārila's theory of word meaning in relation to the sphoṭa theory of Bhartṛhari", StudinM 216-220
221.1.167.3 Pierre-Sylvain Filliozat, "Bhartṛhari and tantra", PNRBFV 1994, 463-480
221.1.167.3.1 Jan E.M.Houben, "Bhartrhari's familiarity with Jainism", ABORI 75, 1994: 1-24, 255-256
221.1.167.4 John D. Kelly, "Bhartṛhari's gentle erudiction" śakti, apoddhāra, saṃgraha and the task of a grammarian", Vacaspatyam 1994, 88-96
221.1.167.4.5 Satya Pal Narang, "The concept of vivarta in Bhartṛhari", SVUOJ 37, 1944, 49-60
221.1.167.5 G. S. Palsule, "Sphoṭa in Bhartṛhari's linguistic philosophy", Vacaspatyam 1994, 128-131
221.1.167.6 Tandra Patnaik, Śabda. A Study of Bhartṛhari's Philosophy of Language. New Delhi 1994
221.1.167.6.5 D. N. Tiwari, "Bhartṛhari's philosophy of relation between word and meaning", JICPR 11.2, 1994, 43-54
221.1.167.8 Jan E.M.Houben, The Sambandha-samudesa (Chapter on Relation) and Bhartrhari's Philosophy of Language, with a Translation of Helaraja's Prakirnaprakasa. Groningen 1995
221.1.168 Toshiya Unebe, "Bhartṛhari on yogyatā, the natural competency of word to meaning", Vacaspatyam 139-149
221.1.168.0 D.N.Tiwari, "Bhartṛharian language, being and cognition", VJP 32.1, 1995-1996, 36-55
221.1.168.1 Gregory M. Bailey, "Bhartṛhari's manipulation of the feminine:, IIT 39, 1996, 201-221
221.1.169 Jan E.M. Houben, "Bhartṛhari's solution to the Liar and some other paradoxes", JIP 23, 1995, 381-401
221.1.169.5 Natalia Isayeva, From Early Vedānta to Kashmir Shaivism: Gauḍapāda, Bhartṛhari, and Abhinavagupta. Albany, N.Y. 1995
221.1.170 R. Patiraj, "The sphoṭa doctrine of Bhartṛhari", IndPQ 22, 1995, 67-74
221.1.171 Johannes Bronkhorst, "Studies on Bhartṛhari, 7: Grammar as the door to liberation", ABORI 76, 1996, 97-106
221.1.171.5 Jan E.M. Houben, "Socio-linguistic attitudes reflect n the work of Bhartṛhari and later Grammarians", ISS 157-195
221.1.172 Yoshiyuki Iwasaki, "Bhartṛhari and the Vaiśeṣika on space", ITBC 47-66
221.1.173 Hiromi Nakane, "Bhartṛhari's concept of śabdajāti", JIBSt 45.1, 1996, 1-3
221.1.173.1 K. Kunjunni Raja, "The word and the sentence: two perspectives, Bhartṛhari and Wittgenstein", ALB 60, 1996, 267-274
221.1.174 D. N. Tiwari, "Cognition, being, and the possibility of expressions: a Bhartṛharian approach", JICPR 14.1, 1996, 65-94
221.1.175 David Carpenter, "Bhartṛhari and the Veda", TCon 1997, 17-32
221.1.175.4 K.Kunjunni Raja, "Bhartṛhari's philosophy of language: sphoṭavāda and śabdabrahmavāda: are they interrelated?", IndBeyond 405-407
221.1.175.5 Gayatri Rath, "Pratibhā versus sentence meaning", VIJ 35-36, 1997-98, 109-115
221.1.175.5.5 Srimannarayanmurti, "Bhartṛhari: the grammarian", Sahitya Akademi 1997
221.1.175.6 D. N. Tiwari, "Bhartṛhari's reply to VaiReṣika's objections to universal as the import of words", Darshana 27.4, 1997, 22-33
221.1.175.7 Ben-Ami Scharfstein;, "Hierarchical idealism: Plotinus/Proclus, Bhartṛhari", IndBeyond 439-470
221.1.176 Hiranmoy Banerjee, "Bhartṛhari: a modern perspective", EssInP 633-637
221.1.176.5 D. C. Tiwari, "Bhartṛhari on language, being and cognition", JJP 10.1, 1998, 27-42
221.1.177 Jan E. M. Houben, "Bhartṛhari's Vākyapadīya and the ancient Vṛtti (1): The Vṛtti and Vṛṣabhadeva's Paddhati on VP 1.46a: ātmabhedam/ atmabhedas", ABORI 78, 1998, 177-198; (2): The Vedic background of the author of the Vākyapadīya-vṛtti", SII 21,1997, 71-78
221.1.177.1 Jan E. M. Houben, "Bhartṛhari's perspecitvism (1): The Vṛtti and Bhartṛhari's perspectivism in the first kāṇḍa of the Vākyapadīya", BOr 317-358
221.1.177.5 D. N. Tiwari, "Possibility of disinterested knowledge--a Bhartrharian approach", JICPR 15.3, 1998, 47-68
221.1.178 Toshiya Unebe, "Bhartṛhari's verses cited in the Laṅkākāvatāra-vṛtti ('Phags pa Langka gshegs pa'i 'grel pa)", JIBSt 46.1, 1998, 19-23
221.1.179 Lachman M. Khubchandrani, "Speech as an ongoing activity (comparing Bhartrhari and Wittgenstein):, IndPQ 26, 1999, 1-18
221.1.180 George Cardona, "Approaching the Vakyapadiya", JAOS 119, 1999, 88ff.
221.1.181 Akihiko Akamatsu, "The two kinds of anumāna in Bhartṛhari's Vākyapadīya", JIP 27. 1999, 17-22
221.1.182 Johannes Bronkhorst, "Studies of Bhartṛhari 8: Prākṛta dhvani and the Sāṃkhya tanmātras", JIP 27, 1999, 23-33
221.1.183 J. E. M. Houben, "The theoretical positions of Bhartṛhari and the Respectable Grammarians", RDSO 72, 1999, 101-142
221.1.184 Jan E. M. Houben, "On syntactic and stylistic evidence regarding the authorship of the Vākyapadīya-Vṛtti (Bhartṛhari's Vākyapadīya and the ancient Vṛtti 3):, WZKSOA 43, 1999, 167-198
221.1.185 Lachman M. Khubchandani, "Speech as an ongoing activity (comparing Bhartṛhari and Wittgenstein)", IndPQ 26, 1999, 1-15
221.1.186 Hideyo Ogawa, "Bhartṛhari on representations (buddhyākāra)", DTI 267-28
221.1.187 Hideyo Ogawa, "Bhartṛhari on śakti: the Vaiśeṣika categories as śaktis", JIBSt 47.2, 1999, 15-22
221.1.187.5 D. N. Tiwari, "Bhartṛhari's arguments on divisibility vs. indivisibility of language", PQJNMU 5.3-4, 1999, 97-130
221.1.188 Ashok Aklujkar, "The epistemological point of view of Bhartrhari", ConK 1-19
221.1.188.5 George Cardona, "Addendum to JAOS 119.1: Interpretation and paraphrase of Vakyapadiya 2.7-8 clarified", JAOS 120, 2000, 234
221.1.188.7 Claus Oetke, "The meaning of verse 25 of the Sambandhasamuddeśa and its context", Studia Indologiczny 7, 2000, 301-342
221.1.188.8 R.C.Pande, "Bhartṛhari's concept of pratibhā", NPVAIC 142-147
221.1.189 Gayatri Rath, Linguistic Philosophy in Vākyapadīya. Delhi 2000
221.1.191 Raghubir Singh, "Sentence-meaning and Bhartṛhari", VIJ 37-38, 1999-2000, 59-69
221.1.192 Akiko Akamatsu, "Abhyudaya and niḥśreyasaḥ in Bhartṛhari", WL 235-248
221.1.193 Ashok Aklujkar, "The word is the world: nondualism in the philosophy of language"", PEW 51, 2001, 452-473
221.1.194 Johannes Bronkhorst, "The peacock's egg: Bhatṛhari on language and reality", PEW 51, 2001, 474-491
221.1.194.5 V.K.Chari, "Bhartṛhari and dhvani: a clarification", ALB 65, 2001, 89-100
221.1.195 Mithilesh Chaturvedi, Vrttisamuddesa of Bhartrhari's Vakyapadiya. A Study. Delhi 2001
221.1.196 Pascale Haag-Bernède, "Conflicting views on the interpretation of Bhartrḥari? The case of madhyamapuruṣa in the Vākyapadīya", ABORI 82, 2001, 233-242
221.1.196.5 Hideyo Ogawa, "Bhartṛhari on A.1.1.68", JIP 29, 2001, 531-543
221.1.196.6 Hideyo Oz(g?)awa, "Bhartṛhari on pravṛtti as the first kāraka", Studia Indologiczny 7, 2000, 343-348
221.1.197 Jan E.M. Houben, "Paradoxe et perspectivisme dans la philosophie de Bhartṛhari: langage, pensée et realité", Bulletin d'Etudes Indiennes 19, 2001, 173-199
221.1.198 Terence Parsons, "Bhartṛhari on what cannot be said", PEW 51, 2001, 525-534
221.1.200 Sebastian Alackapally, Being and Meaning: Reality and Language. Bhartrhari and Heidegger. Delhi 2002
221.1.201 Sebastian Alackapally, "Being and language meeting ground for Bhartṛhari and Heidegger", JD 27, 2002, 193-206. Also WEIP 227-242
221.1.202 P. R. Bhat, "The problem of meaning in Vākyapadīya", PLCIT 63-80
221.1.202.5 Achyutananda Dash, "Bhartṛhari: a challenge to the Navya Nyāya theory of linguistic understanding", Subhasini 63-86
221.1.203 Brendan S. Gillon, "Bhartṛhari's rule for unexpressed kārikās: the problem of control in classical Sanskrit", CardonaFest 93-111
221.1.205 Pascale Haag Bernède, "Conflicting views in the interpretation of Bhartṛhari", ITH 425-438
221.1.205.1 Pascale Haag-Bernède, Bhartṛhari. Le Sāṃkhyāsamuddeśa du Vākyapadīya (VP 3.11)(Theorie du nombre) et son commentaire de Prakīrṇakaprakāśa par Helārāja", PICI 73, 2005
221.1.205.5 Kapil Kapoor, "Appearance and reality" significating in Bhartṛhari", SLC 149-160
221.1.206 Tandra Patnaik, "Intention and linguistic communication: the Bhartrharian perspective", PLCIT 81-98
221.1.207 R. C. Pradhan, "Grades of holism: Bhartṛhari reconsidered", PLCIT 51-62
221.1.208 K.V.Somayajulu, A Critical Study on the Sādhanasamuddeśa of Vākyapadīya. Delhi 2002
221.1.209 D. N. Tiwari, "Sentential meaning: Bhartṛhari's arguments on the controversy between word-theories (padārthavāda) and sentential theory of meaning (vākyārthavāda)", JICPR 19.1, 2002, 125-168
221.1.209.1 D. N. Tiwari, "B. K. Matilal and Bhartṛhari's logic of translation: a discussion", JICPR 19.2, 2002, 164-172
221.1.210 Toshiya Unebe, "KWIC. Index to the Vākyapadiya, Kānda I", Sambhasa 22, 2002, 1-239
221.1.211 Anirban Dash, "Nature of śabda in Brahmakāṇḍa", JGJRI 48-49, 2002-2003, 241-252
221.1.214 D.N.Tiwari, "Reply to query by Prof. Daya Krishna, "Has there been a tradition of philosophy initiated by Vakyapadiya or has it been an isolated work?", JICPR 20.2, 2003, 188-192
221.1.214.5 Vincenzo Vergiani, "Two parallel passages in the Mahābhāṣyaṭīkā and the Vākyapadī ya of Bhartṛhari", RDSO 77, 2003, 85-94
221.1.214.8 D. N. Tiwari, "Bhartṛhari on univeral as the import of words", JIAP 43.1-2, 2004, 33-58
221.1.215 Toshiyo Unebe, "The 'grammarian's' objection in Sthiramati's Triṃśikābhāṣya and Bhatṛhari's argument on the secondary application of words", TMSR 135-137
221.1.216 D. N. Tiwari, "The query raised by Professor Daya Krishna on the issue of turiya in Bhartṛhari", JICPR 22.4, 2005, 261-266
221.1.217 D. N. Tiwari, "Bhartrḥari's arguments against inference", JIAP 44.1-2, 2005, 1-8
221.1.218 Nirmalya Narayan Chakraborty, "Imaginary dialogue of Bhartṛhari and Quine", JICPR 22.3, 2005, 49-60
221.1.220 Pascale Haag (Bernède), "Du nombre grammatical dans les composes sanskrits: le concept d'abhedaikatvasāṃkhyā", HEL 27.1, 2005, 127-152
221.1.228 Akihiko Akamatsu, "Bhartṛhari on meaning and form: the second book of the Vākyapadīya, kārikās 325-347", Acta Asiatica 90, 2006, 1-13
221.1.229 Jyotish Ch. Basak, "Concept of sphoṭa in Bhartṛhari", SPIP 142-159
221.1.229.1 Evgeniya A. Desnitskaya, "Antinomy of one and many in Bhartṛhari's Vākyapadīya", AOV 7, 2006, 209-222
221.1.229.3 Bhavatosh Indra Guru, "Vākyaṛtha according to Bhartṛhari", JASBe 48.1, 2006, 61-72
221.1.229.7 M. G. Dhadpale, "Vākyapadīya", ABORI 87, 2001, 259-266
221.1.230 Jan E. M. Houben, Ṛgveda 1.164.23-24 and Bhartṛhari's philosophy of language," EMH 711-720
221.1.231 Tandra Patnaik, "Eternality of word-meaning relation vi-a-vis contextuality: the Bhartṛharian perspective", SPIP 80-89
221.1.232 Tandra Patnaik, Śabda: A Study of Bhartṛhari's Philosophy of Language. Delhi 2007
221.1.234 Jae-hyung Yi, "Bhatṛhari's negation of causality", JIBSt 55.3, 2007, 187-188
221.1.240 David Shulman, "Illumination, imagination, creativity: Rājaśekhara, Kuntaka, and Jagannātha on pratibhā", JIP 36, 2008, 481-505
223.Author Unknown (450)
1.Śatapañcaśatikā- or Adhyārdhaśatikāprajñāpāramitāsūtra
223.1.0 Edited by H. Izumi and S. Tagano. Kyoto 1917
223.1.1 Sanskrit fragments mixed with Khotanese edited in Leumann. Also in TDG 1930. Sanskrit portions reprinted in Mahayanasutrasamgraha I, 1961, 90-92
223.1.2 Edward Conze, "The Adhyārdhaśatikā Prajñāpāramitā" in MMR 101-116
223.1.3 Shuyu Kanaoka, "The lineage of viśuddhi-pāda thought in the Prajñāpāramitānayaśatapañcaśatikā", JIBSt 16.2, 15-21
223.1.4 Masamitsu Soejima, "A study of the Adhyārdhaśatikāprajñā-pāramitāsūtra" (in Japanese with English summary). RinN 19, 1970, 127-134
223.1.5 See EnBud 1.2, 209-211
224.Saramati (450)
1.Ratnagotravibhāga Uttaratantra (NCat II, 304)
224.1.1 Translated by E. Obermiller. ActOD 9, 1931. Reprinted Shanghai 1940; Talent, Or. 1984. Reprinted with E.H.Johnston's Sanskrit text by H.S.Maitreyanath Prasad. Delhi 1991. Reprinted Talent, Oregon 1984
224.1.2 Sections 5.1.1 and 3.1-10 edited by H.W.Bailey and E.H. Johnston. BSOAS 8.1, 1935, 77-83
224.1.2.1 Harold Walter Bailey, "A fragment of the Uttaratantra in Sanskrit", BSOAS 8.1, 1935
224.1.3 Edited by Edward Hamilton Johnston and T.Chowdhary. JBRS 36, 1950. Reprinted Patna 1950, 1960
224.1.4 V.V.Gokhale, "A note on Ratnagotravibhāga I.52 = Bhagavadgītā 13.32", SIBSY 90-91
224.1.5 Jikido Takasaki, "The Tathāgatotpattisambhavanirdeśa of the Avataṃśaka and the Ratnagotravibhāga", JIBSt 7.1, 1958, 48-53
224.1.6 Jikido Takasaki, "A comment on the term ārambana in the Ratnagotravibhāga I.9", JIBSt 10.2, 1962, 26-33
224.1.7 Ichijo Ogawa, "With regard to the thought of Tathāgatagarbha (Buddha-dhātu) in Indian Mahāyāna Buddhism" (summary). ToG 30, 1965, 10-11
224.1.8 Translated by Jikido Takasaki. SerOR 33, Roma 1966.
224.1.9Edited by Zuiryu Nakamura in A Study of Ratna-Gotra-Mahāyānottara-Tantra-
Śāstra Based on Comparison and Contrast between the Sanskrit Original and the Chinese Translations. Tokyo 1961, 1969
224.1.10 D. Seyfort Ruegg, La théorie du Tathāgata-garbha et du gotra. Paris 1969
224.1.11 Summarized in Warder 403-407
224.1.12 Lambert Schmithausen, "Philologisches Bemerkungen zum Ratnagotravibhāga", WZKSOA 15, 1971, 123-178
224.1.13 D. Seyfort Ruegg, Le Traité du Tathāgatagarbha de Bu Ston Rin Grub. Paris 1973
224.1.14 Lambert Schmithausen, "Zu D. Seyfort Ruegg's Buch 'La théorie du Tathāgatagarbha et du gotra'", WZKSOA 17, 1973, 123-160
224.1.15 D. Seyfort Ruegg, "The meanings of the term gotra and the textual history of the Ratnagotravibhāga", BSOAS 39, 1976, 341-363. French summary in CIDO 29, 1976, 88
224.1.16 Translated by Katia Holmes and Ken Tsubtim Gamtsa as The Ultimate Mahāyāna Explanatory Text on the Changeless Nature (The Mahāyāna Uttara Tantra Shāstra) of Maitreya and Asaṅga. Esklademur, Scotland 1979, 1985
224.1.16.5 William Grosnick, "Nonorigination and nirvāṇa in the early tathāgatagarbha literature", JIABS 4.2, 1981, 33-43
224.1.17 William Grosnick, "Cittaprakṛti and ayonimanaskāra in the Ratnagotravibhāga: antecedent for the Hsien-Nien distinction of the Awakening of Faith", JIABS 6.2, 1983, 35-47
224.1.18 Ruben L.F. Habito, "Wisdom and compassion as constitutive of Buddhahood. A Mahāyāna Theravāda treatise in comparative light", JIBSt 34.1, 1985, 16-24
224.1.19 Ruben L.F. Habito, "On dharmakāya as ultimate reality: prolegomena for a Buddhist-Christian dialogue", JJRS 12, 1985, 233-252.
224.1.19.5 Noriaki Hakamaya, "A critique of the structure of faith in the Ratnagotravibhāga", TBKK 46, 1988, 27-50
224.1.20 Lobsang Dargyay, "What is non-existent and what is remanent in śūnyatā", JIP 18, 1990, 81-91
224.1.20.5 Jeffrey Hopkins, "Image-likeness and Tathāgatagarbha: a reading of William of St. Therry's Golden Epistle and the Ratnagotravibhāga", BChS
224.1.21 Jikido Takasaki, "Tathāgatagarbha and the community of bodhisattvas", Kalyanamittam 247-256
224.1.22 S.C.Goswami, "The monistic absolute of the Uttaratantra and modern science", PGI 275-282
224.1.23 Translated by Ken and Katia Holmes. Delhi 1994
224.1.23.1 T.R.Sharma, "The conept of gotra in the Uttaratantra of Maitreya", AIBP 116-126. Also ITaur 21-22, 1995-96, 321-332
224.1.24 S.K.Hookham, The Buddha Within. Tathāgatagarbha Doctrine According to the Shentong Interpretation of the Ratnagotravibhāga. Albany, N.Y. 1991, 1995; Delhi 1992
224.1.26 Michael Zimmerman, "Identification of a quotation in the Ratnagotravibhāgavṛtti", ARIRSU 11, 1999, 215-216
224.1.28 Translated by Jamgon Khongtrul Lodra Theye and explanations by Khenpo Tsultrim Gyamtio Rinpoache. This translated by Rosemarie Fuchs as Buddha-Nature. Ithaca, N.Y. 2000
224.1.30 Khanchen Thranug Rinpoche's translation, with commentary, translated from the Tibetan by Ken and Katia Holmes. Ed. Clark Johnson. Forres 1999; Delhi 2001; Auckland, New Zealand 2003, 2004
224.1.31 Summarized by Jikido Takasaki. EnIndPh9, 2003, 262-272
224.1.35 C.D.Sebastian, Metaphysics and Mysticism in Mahāyāna Buddhism: an Analytical Study of the Ratnagotravibhāga-Mahāyānottaraśāstra. Delhi 2005
224.1.38 Klaus-Dieter Mathes, A Direct Path to the Buddha Within. Gö Lotsava's Mahaṃudra Interpretation of the Ratnagotravibhāga. Boston 2008
2.Mahāyānadharmaviśeṣaśāstra
224.2.1 Summarized by Jikido Takasaki in 224.1.8; reprinted EnIndPh9, 2003, 272-273
225.Skandhila or Sugandhara or Sumaṅgala (450)
1.Abhidharmāvatāra (Sarvāstivāda)(NCat I, 292)
225.1.1 Hajime Sakurabe, "Abhidharmāvatāra by an unidentified author", NNMRP II, 359-370
225.1.2 H.S.Cooray, "Abhidharmāvatāra-Śāstra", EnBud 1.1, 1961, 88
225.1.3 Hajime Sakurabe, "A study of the Abhidharmāvatāra" (summary). ARROU 18, 1965, 6
225.1.4 Edited in Tibetan and translated into French by Marcel Van Velthen. Publications de l'Institute Orientaliste de Louvain 16, Louvain-la-Neuve 1977
225.1.5 Bhikkhu K. Dhammajoti, "The category of citta-viprayukta-saṃskāra in the Abhidharmāvatāra", SLJBS 2, 1988, 160-174
225.1.6 Summarized by Bart Dessein in SarvastiBS 282-285
225.1.6.5 Translated by Kuala Lumpur Dhammajoti as Entrance into the Supreme Doctrine. U. of Kelaniya, Sri Lanka 1998
225.1.7 Summarized by Christian Lindtner and Fred Greiner in EnIndPh9, 2003, 274-280
226.Śamathadeva (450)
1.Ṭīkopāyika on Vasubandhu's Abhidharmakośa
See i175.52.5
226.1.1 Summarized by Stefan Anacker. EnIndPh9, 2003, 280-282
226A.Author Unknown (450)
1.Anakṣarakarandaka(vai)rocanagarbhasūtra (K.213; T.828-830; N.221, Bagchi, p. 256)
227.Nāgārjuna (450)
1.Bhavasamkrāntiśāstra (Mādhyamika)(T.575-577)
227.1.1 Sūtra edited in Tibetan, restored into Sanskrit and translated by N. Aiyasvami Sastri. JOR 5, 1931, 246-260
227.1.2 Prabhubhai Patel, "A note on Bhavasaṃkrāntisūtra", JOR 7, 1933, 190-191
227.1.3 G. Stramigioli, "Bhavasaṃkrānti", RDSO 4, 1936, 284-306
227.1.4 Restored to Sanskrit with Maitreyanātha's commentary, edited in Tibetan and translated, with English summary of Maitreyanātha's commentary, by N.Aiyasvami Sastri. ALB 1, 1937, i-iv, 1-60. 2, 1938, 61-112, i-xxxvi
227.1.5 Indumatie Karunaratne, "Bhavasaṃkrānti", EnBud 3.1, 1971, 20
227.1.6 Edited and translated into Spanish by Carmen Dragonetti. Buenos Aires 1977
227.1.7 Noriaki Hakamaya, "Analysis of the Bhavasaṃkrāntisūtra", JIBSt 26.1, 1977, 29-33
227.1.8 Translated by Fernando Tola and Carmen Dragonetti. BudSR 2.1 1986, 3-18
227.1.9 Translated into Spanish by F. Tola and C. Dragonetti in "Bhavasaṃkrāntisūtra", Budismo Mahayane (Buenos Aires, 1980, 19-36
227A.Author Unknown (453)
1.Ratnameghasūtra
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 283
227AA.Author Unknown (453)
1.Dharmadhātubuddhakasūtra
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 283
227B.Author Unknown (454)
1.Śraddhābālādhānāvatāramudrāsūtra (T.305; Toh. 201)
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 253
227C.Author Unknown (457)
1.(Sarvabuddhaviṣayāvatāra)Jñānālokālaṃkārasūtra (K. 188 = T.357-359 = N. 245)
See a49A.1.50; EnIndPh 9, 2003, 283
227D.Author Unknown (460)
1.Aśokarājasūtra (T.2043)
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 283
227D.1.1 Translated by Jung-ho Li as The Biographical Scriptures of King Aśoka. Berkeley, Calif. 1993
227DA.Author Unknown (460)
1.Daśadharmasūtra (T.310(9), 314; Toh. 53)
227E.Author Unknown (465)
1.Dharmasaṃgītisūtra (T.761; Toh. 238)
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 283
227E.1.1 Partly translated in Conze, BudTexts, no. 152
227E.1.2 Partly translated into German in Nyanaponika nos. 79, 82, 88
227E.1.3 Partly translated in de Bary, 97, 102-103
227E.1.4 Partly translated in German in Winternitz, nos. 16, 22, 27
227F.Author Unknown (470)
1.Mañjuśrīparipṛcchāsūtra (T.468, 473, 661-662)
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 284
227G.Author Unknown (470)
1.Saptaśatikāprajñāpāramitāsūtra (T.220(7), 230, 232-233, 310)
227G.1.1 Edited by Giuseppe Tucci. Memoria della Romana accademia dei Lincei, Classe di scienze morali etc., ser. 5a, vol. 17, Roma 1923
227G.1.2 Partly edited by J. Masuda. TDG 6-7.2, 1930, 185-241
227G.1.3 Edited by P.L.Vaidya in Mahayanasutrasamgraha I, 340-351
227G.1.4 Analyzed in Conze, TPL 58-60
227G.1.5 Edward Conze, "The perfection of Wisdom in Seven Hundred Lines", Kalpa 1 (1963), nos. 2, 4-20. Reprinted in 30 Yrs 191-206
227G.1.6 Partly translated by Conze BudTexts nos. 139, 145
227G.1.7 Portions translated by Edward Conze in Selected Sayings; also SPP 97-107
227G.1.8 Kamaleswara Bhattacharya, "The ātman in the Prajñāpāramitā Sūtras", Our Heritage Special Number. Sanskrit College 150th Anniversary 1824-1974, Calcutta 1979, 39-46
227G.1.9 Partly translated into French in Silburn 11, 120
227G.1.10 Translated in Treasury 100-113
227G.1.11 Summary by Edward Conze in his The Prajñāpāramitā Literature pp . 58-59 reprinted in EnIndPh9, 2003, 284-285
227H.Śuddhamati (470)
1.Vyākhyāna on Nāgārjuna's Pratītyasamutpādahṛdaya
See 47.6: 6,8. Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 284
228.Author Unknown (475)
1.Sārasamuccaya on Skandhila's Abhidharmāvatāra
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 286
228A.Author Unknown (475)
1.Pratītyasamutpādādivibhaṅganirdeśasūtra
228A.1.1 Edited by P.L.Vaidya in Mahayanasutrasamgraha I, 117-118
228A.1.2 Yoshohito G. Muroji, "Guṇamati's version of the PSĀVN", TibSt 647-656
229.Author Unknown (475)
1.Kṣemavativyākaraṇasūtra
See EnIndPh9, 2003, 285
229.1.1 Translated into French in Feer 355-381
230.Author Unknown (475)
1.Vajramaṇḍadhāraṇīsūtra
See EnIndPh9, 2003, 285
231-234.(unassigned)
235.Vyāsa (475)
1.Bhāṣya on Patañjali's Yogasūtras
See a22.1.69, 69.8.a23.1.100; 131.1.283, 131.1.115. e131.1:2,7,10,16,18,20,40,41,43,45,56,57,75,77.1,79,91,111,112,139, 143.1, 182.1, 210.2, 216, 235.1,253, 256. et131.1:81, 131.1.180.1. t30.1.5, 131.1.35, 37,51,196.
235.1.1 Govinda Das, "The date of the Yoga Bhāṣya of Vyāsa", IA 44, 1915, 24
235.1.2 V.Raghavan, "Abhinavagupta and his Bhāṣya on the Yogasūtras", AOR 3, 1938-39, 1-6; also VRA 78-87
235.1.3 H.G.Narahari, "Śaṃkara and Vyāsa on the theory of karma", BDCRI 17, 1955, 20-26
235.1.4 S.Takagi, "Sāṃkhyan view in the Yogabhāṣya", JIBSt 22, 1963, 824-829
235.1.5 Ram Shankar Bhattacharya, "A wrong interpretation of the word jyotiḥ in the Vyāsabhāṣya III.1", JYI 16, 1970-71, 103-107
235.1.6 Kamlesh Gupta, Comparative Study of Vyāsabhāṣya. Ph.D.Thesis, Delhi University 1973
235.1.7 Anima Sen Gupta, "Prakṛti and the Vyāsabhāṣya on Yogasūtra 2.19", VK 60, 1973-74, 457-458
235.1.8 Selections translated in HTR 81-85
235.1.9 Y.K.Wadhwani, "Ekabhāvikā karmāśaya in Yogabhāṣya 2.13", BDCRI 36, 1976-77, 164-170
235.1.10 Translated by Subbuswami Krishnamurti. HinduReg 9, 1979 - 12, 1982
235.1.11 Peter Connolly, "Some critical comments on Vyāsa's interpretation of selected Yoga sūtras", PIRKW 35-44
235.1.12 Ravindranath Bodha, "Vyāsa on kleśa and vṛtti", YM 26.2, 1987, 53-56
235.1.13 Parimal Devnath, "Cittamala prasaṅgana", YM 26.2, 1987, 47-52
235.1.13.5 Chandrimali S. Naikar, "The quintessence of Yogabhḥṣya in the Brahmapurāṇa", JKU 33, 1989-90, 208-213
235.1.15 P. V. Shastri, "Is Vyāsa the same as Bādarāyaṇa?" Triveni 65.2-3, 1996, 38-39
235.1.16 Citrarekha V. Kher, "Buddhism as presented by Vyāsa in the Yogabhāṣya", BJBS 519-528
235.1.16.5 Jens-Uwe Hartmann, "New fragmente aus dem 'Yogalehrbuch'", FDS 127-136
235.1.17 Yoharan Grinshpon, "Yogic revolution and tokens of conservatism in Vyāsa-Yoga", JIP 25, 1997, 129-138
235.1.20 Ko Endo, "Prasaṃkhyāna in the Yogabhāṣya", WL 75-90
235.1.25 Summarized by Ram Shankar Bhattacharya, EnIndPh 12, 2008, 184-218
235A.Author Unknown (475)
1.Siṃhanādakasūtra
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 285
236.Buddhapālita (480)
1.Vṛtti on Nāgārjuna's Madhyamakasūtras
See e47.4:8,61, 94; 47.16.31
236.1.1 Chapter One reconstructed from Tibetan to Sanskrit by I.Datar, "A study of the first twenty chapters of Buddhapālita's Mūlamadhyamakavṛtti", JASBo 26, 1950-51, 129-139. Summarized in PAIOC 15, 1949, Summaries 79
236.1.2 Indumatie Karunaratne, "Buddhapālita-Mūlamadhyamaka-Vṛtti", EnBud 3.3, 1973, 458-459
236.1.3 Upali Karunaratne, "Buddhapālita", EnBud 3.3, 1973, 458
236.1.3.5 Part of Chapter Two translated in Musashi Tachikawa, "A study of Buddhapalita's Mula-madhyamakavrtti (I)", Journal of the Faculty of Literature, Nagoya University 63, 1974, 1-19
236.1.4 Christian Lindtner, "Buddhapālita on emptiness", IIJ 23, 1981, 187-217
236.1.4.5 Chapter One translated in Judit Feher, "Buddhapālita's Mulamadhyamakavrtti: arrival and spread of Prasangika-Madhyamika literature in Tibet", in Louis Ligeti (ed.), Tibetan and Buddhist Studies Commemorating the 200th Anniversary of the Birth of Alexander Csoma de Koros: Bibliogtheca Orientalis Hungarica, Vol. XXIX, Part 1 (Budapest 1984).
236.1.4.7 Akira Saito, A Study of the Buddhapalita-Mulamadhyamakavrtti. Ph.D.Dissertation, Australian National University 1984
236.1.5 William L. Ames, "Buddhapālita's exposition of the Madhyamaka", JIP 14, 1986, 313-348
236.1.6 Akira Saito, "Buddhapālita in the history of Mādhyamika philosophy" (summary). TICOJ 31, 1986, 106-107
236.1.7 Summarized by William L. Ames. EnIndPh9, 2003, 286-305
236.1.8 William L. Ames, "Bhāvaviveka's own view of his differences with Buddhapālita", SPD 41-66
237.Mādhava (480)
1.General
237.1.1 V.Raghavan, "Mādhava, an early unfaithful exponent of the Sāṃkhya", Sarup 162-164
237.1.2 Esther A. Solomon, "Sāṃkhya-nāśaka Mādhava", PAIOC 26, 1972, 355-365
238-240.(unassigned)
241.Author Unknown (480)
1.(Mahā) Ratnakūṭadharmaparyāyaśatasāhasrikāparivartakāśya-paparivartaṭīkā (T.1523)
243.Author Unknown (480)
1.Suvarṇasaptati on Īśvarakṛṣṇa's Sāṃkhyakārikās
See e163.1:21,49
243.1.1 Samuel Beal, "On a Chinese version of the Sāṃkhya Kārikā", JRAS n.s. 10, 1878, 355-360
243.1.2 S.S.Suryanarayana Sastri, "The Chinese Suvarṇasaptati and the Māṭhara Vṛtti", JOR 5, 1931. Also CPSSS 349-355
243.1.3 N.Aiyasvami Sastri, "A commentary on the Sāṃkhya Kārikā in Chinese", JSVRI 2, 1941, 65-67
243.1.3.1 Edited by N. Aiyaswami Sastri. SVOS 7, Tirupati 1944
243.1.4 Summarized by Gerald J. Larson. Samkhya 67-78
244.Author Unknown (480)
1.Sāṃkhyasaptativṛtti on Īśvarakṛṣṇa's Sāṃkhyakārikās
244.1.1 Edited by Esther A. Solomon. Ahmedabad 1973
244.1.2 Summarized by Esther A. Solomon. Samkhya 193-208
245-246.(unassigned)
247.Author Unknown (485)
1.Buddhanāmasūtra
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 285
247B.Author Unknown (485)
1.Sarvabālapāladhāraṇīsūtra
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 305
247C.Author Unknown (485)
1.Mañjuśrīparicaraṇasūtra
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 306
247D.Author Unknown (485)
1.Maitreya(bodhisattva)paripṛcchāsūtra
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 306
248.Author Unknown (488)
1.Saṃghāta(dharmaparyaya)sūtra (T.423-424; Toh. 102)
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 306
248.1.1 Partly translated into German in Leumann, 1-41
248.1.2 Sections edited and translated by Sten Konow, Śaka Studies. Oslo Ethnografiske Museum Bulletin 5 (Oslo 1932)
248.1.3 Sections edited in L.G.Herzenberg's unpublished dissertation Jazyk khotanosakskix buddhijskix pamjatnikov (Leningrad 1966)
248.1.4 Edited and translated by R.A.Gunatilaka's unpublished dissertation, Cambridge 1967
248.1.5 Translated into German in Oskar von Hinuber, "Das Saṃghātasūtra. Ausgabe und Kommentierte Übersetzung eines nord-buddhischen Lehrtextes in Sanskrit und Śakisch", unpublished Habilitatenschrift, Mainz Universitat 1973
248.1.6 Sections edited H.W.Bailey, KT 5, 1983
248.1.7 G. Canevascini, "New readings and new works in the Khotanese Saṅghātasūtra", Studia Iranica 19.1, 1990, 13-20
248.1.8 G.Canevascini, The Khotanese Saṅghātasūtra, a critical edition. Unpublished doctoral dissertation, Hamburg 1992
248.1.9 Deborah E. Klimburg-Salter, The Painted Covers of the Saṃghātasūtra 627/8 and the Votive Objects from Gilgit. Madison, Wisconsin 1992
249.Author Unknown (490)
1.Marīcidhāraṇīsūtra (T.1256)
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 307
249A.Buddhasena (490?)
1.Yogācārabhūmi
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 307
249B.Author Unknown (491)
1.Maitreya(mahā)siṃhanādasūtra
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 307
249B.1.1 Gregory Schopen, "The bones of a Buddha and the business of a monk: conservative monastic values in an early Mahāyāna polemical text", JIP 27, 1999, 279-324. Reprinted FFMBI 63-107
250.Author Unknown (492)
1.Niyatāniyatāvatāramudrāsūtra (T.645-646; Toh. 202)
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 308
251.Author Unknown (492)
1.Paramārthadharmavijayasūtra (T.833-834)
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 308
252.Author Unknown (492)
1.Ratnacūḍāmaṇisūtra (T.1526)
253.Author Unknown (492)
1.(Saddharma)Smṛtyupasthānasūtra (T.721-722)
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 306-307
253.1.0 Edited by Satya Brata Samasrami. Calcutta 1873
253.1.1 Lin Li-Kouang, L'Aide-Mémoire de la Vraie Loi (Saddharma-Smṛtyupasthāna-Sūtra)--Recherches sur un Sūtra Développé du Petit Véhicule. Musee Guimet Bibliotheque d'Etudes, Tome 54. Paris 1949.
253.1.1.3 Extracts edited and translated into French in Lin-li Kouang, Dharmasamuccaya, compendium de la loi. Three volumes, AMG 53, 65, 75. Paris 1946-1973. Part 3, Chapters 13-36 revised by Andrê Breau.
253.1.2 Ratna Handurukande, "Daśākuśalakaraṇaphala", Kalyani 5-6, 1986-87, 43-48
253.1.5 Pasadika, "The Smṛtyupasthānasūtra or the Ekottarāgama (EĀ)(tr. from the Chinese version)", FacIC 494-502
253.1.9 Satipatthānasūtra. The Direct Path to Realization. Tr. Amalaya. Birmingham, 2003
253.1.10 Patrick A. Pranke, "Satipaṭṭhāna-Sutta", EnB 2, 2004, 754
254.Author Unknown (492)
1.Vyāsaparipṛcchāsūtra (T.354, 310(49))
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 308
254A.Author Unknown (492)
1.Kanakavarṇapūrvayoga or -avadāna-sūtra (T.162)
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 308
254B.Author Unknown (492)
1.Maṅgalāṣṭakasūtra (T.429)
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 308
254C.Author Unknown (492)
1.Vimala(nāna)upakāsikāparipṛcchāsūtra
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 307
254C.1.1 Translated in F.W.Thomas, Tibetan Literary Texts and Documents, Part I (London 1935), 179-258
254D.Author Unknown (492)
1.Sūtra on the highest reliance
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 308-309
254E.Author Unknown (510)
1.Maitreya(mahā)siṃhanādasūtra (T.310(23))
254E.1.1 Gregory Schopen, "The bones of a buddha and the business of a monk: conservative monastic values in an early Mahāyāna polemical tract", JIP 27, 1999, 279-324
254F.Author Unknown (492)
1.Paramārthadharmavijayasūtra
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 308
255.Author Unknown (495)
1.Karaṇḍavyūhasūtra
See a103.1.103.5
See also EnIndPh9, 2003, 310-311
255.1.1 Partly translated in Edward B. Cowell, "The northern Buddhist legend of Avalokiteśwara's descent into the hell Avīchi", Journal of Philology 6, 1876, 222-231; also IA 8, 1879, 250-252
255.1.2 Summarized in Prabhas Chandra Majumdar, "The Karaṇḍavyūha: its metrical version", IHQ 24, 1948, 239-299
255.1.3 Translated in Thomas 72-78
255.1.3.5 Constantin Regamey, Lexicological Gleanings from the Karaṇḍavyūhasuṭra. Poona, Madras 1955
255.1.4 Edited by P.L.Vaidya in Mahayanasutrasamgraha 258-308
255.1.4.1 Edited from a Nepalese manuscript by Lokesh Chandra. New Delhi 1981, 1999
255.1.4.5 Afshar Qobad, North-western Rivers and Regions in the Prose Recension of the Karaṇḍavyūhasūtra: Probable Recension of Ancient Iranian Beliefs in a Buddhist Sanskrit Text. Lausanne 1983
255.1.5 Adeheid Mette, "Beschreibung eines Kultbildes im Gilgit-Manuscript des Karaṇḍavyūhasūtra", BIS 9-10, 1996, 217-224
255.1.6 Adelheid Mette, Die Gilgitfragmente des Karandavyuha. Swisstal-Odendorf 1997
255.1.7 Adelheid Mette, "Die stotras der Karandavyuha", Bulletin d'Etudes Indiennes 15, 1997, 145-169
255.1.10 Alexander Studhelme, The Origins of Oṃ Maṇipadme Hūṃ. A Study of the Kāraṇḍavyūha Sūtra. Albany, N.Y. 2002
255.1.15 Ruriko Sakama, "A study od the Karandavyūha: differences between the Matte edition and the Samasrami edition", JIBSt 54.3, 2006, 163
255.1.16 Gregory Schopen, "The ambiguity of Avalokiteśvara and the tentative identification of a painted scene from a Mahāyāna Sūtra in Ajantā", FFMBI
255.1.18 Ruriko Sakume, "Forms of Avalokite'vāra and the Karaṇḍavyūha Sūtra", JIBSt 55.3, 2007, 197-198
255A.Author Unknown (495)
1.Buddhagotraśāstra
255A.1.1 Summarized by Jikido Takasaki. EnIndPh9, 2003, 309
256.Brahmanandin or Taṅka (500) (NCat VIII, 1)
1.Vākya on Chāndogya Upaniṣad (NCat VII, 117)
See a277.3.1
256.1.1 Mysore Hiriyanna, "Fragments from Brahmanandin", KBPCV 151-158. Reprinted in IPS 2, 65-72
256.1.2 Polagolam Sri Rama Sastri, "Some pre-Śakara Advaitins I", TVOS 20.1, 1995, 11-19
257.Pūjyapāda or Devanandin (500) (NCat IX, 110)
1.Iṣṭopadeśa with autocommentary (NCat II, 262) (Jain)
257.1.1 Edited, with Āśādhara's commentary, and translated by Manoharalala Sastrin. MDJG 13, 1918. Reprinted Bombay 1954
257.1.2 Translated by Champat Rai Jain as The Discourse Divine. Hardoi 1925. This translation reprinted, with Raoji Nemchand Shah's translation of Pūjyapāda's Samādhiśataka, all edited by Jagdish Prasad Jain 'Sadhak', New Delhi 2000
257.1.3 Edited with Āśādhara's Ṭīkā and Champat Rai Jain's The Discourse Divine. Text and commentary translated by Dhanyakumar Jain. Agasa 1973
257.1.3.5 Edited, with Prabhācandra's Ṭīkā, by Chhotalal Gulabcand Gandhi. Bombay 2003
257.1.4 Cf. EnIndPh10, 2007, 174
2.Samādhitantra or Samādhiśataka (Jain) (NCat IX, 110)
See t257.1.2
257.2.1 Edited, with Prabhācandra's Ṭīkā, and translated by M.N. Dwivedi. Ahmedabad 1895
257.2.2 Edited, with Prabhācandra's Ṭīkā, by Pannalal and Vamsidhara. SJGM 1, 1905
257.2.3 Edited by Muni Manik. Meerut 1915
257.2.4 Edited by Sital Prasad. Delhi 1918
257.2.5 Edited by Jnanananda in Śāntisopāna (Banaras 1922)
257.2.6 Translated with English commentary by Ajita Prasad. JainG 33, 1936 - 34, 1937
257.2.7 Edited with Prabhācandra's Ṭīkā by Ravaji Namcand Shah. Sangli 1938
257.2.8 Edited by J. Mukhtar. Sarsawa 1939
257.2.9 Translated with commentary by Raoji Nemchand Shah. Second edition, Aliganj 1962
257.2.11 Edited with Āṣādhara's commentary, with Gujarati and Hindi translations. Bombay 2003
257.2.12 Summarized by K.H.Potter, EnIndPh10, 2007, 174-176
3.Sārasaṃgraha (Jain) (NCat IX, 10)
4.Sarvārthasiddhi on Umāsvāti's Tattvārthasūtra (NCat VIII, 78; IX, 10)
See e196B.1:10.1, 45.0. t196B.1.62
257.4.1 Edited by Virchand and Amichand Dharasivakar. Kolhapur 1903, 1911, 1917
257.4.2 Edited by J.R.Sahaya. Etah 1928
257.4.3 Edited by Jinadas Sastri. Sholapur 1939
257.4.4 Abridged by Chainsukhdas and edited with English notes by C.S.Mallinathan. Jaipur 1951
257.4.5 Edited by Phulcandra Siddhantasastri. JPMJG 13, 1955, 1971.
257.4.6 Translated by S.A.Jain, Reality. Calcutta 1960
257.4.7 Summaried by K.H.Potter. EnIndPh10, 2008, 159-174
5.General
257.5.1 Jyoti Prasad Jain, "Jaina gurus of the name Pūjyapāda", JainA 16, 1950: 1, 46. 18, 1952, 7
257.5.2 S. A. Srimandhar Kumar, "Saint scholar Pujyapāda as recounted by poet Devacandra in his work", Jinamanjari 17.1, 1998, 47-50
257.5.5 M. Jalendiram, "Ācārya Pūjyapāda and his works". JainJ 28, 2003, 84-91
258-259.(unassigned)
261.Author Unknown (500)
1.Aparāmitāyurjñānahṛdayadhāraṇīsūtra (T.370)
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 311
262.Author Unknown (500)
1.Mahāmaṇivipulavimānaviśvasupratiṣṭhitaguhyasūtra (T.1005(a), 1006-1007)
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 311
262A.Author Unknown (500)
1.Saptabuddhakasūtra (T.1682)
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 311
262B.Author Unknown (508)
1.Pradīpanīyasūtra (T.702)
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 311
262C.Author Unknown (508)
1.Lokaprajñapti(abhidharmasūtra)
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 312. Analyzed in e175.1.2
262C.1.1 Paul Mus, La Lumiére sur les Six Voies. Paris 1939
262C.1.2 Paul Mus, Ṣaḍgatikārikā et Lokaprajñapti. Étude sur les sources sanskrites anciennes conservées dans le Pāli birman. Paris 1939
262C.1.3 Paul Mus, Les Ṣaḍgatikārikā de Dharmika Subhūti retrouvées au Nepal par Sylevain levi, publiées, traudites et annotées à l'aide des versions in pāli, chionis et tibetain. Paris 1939
262C.1.4 Eugene Denis, "La Lokapaññati et la legende birmane d'Aśoka", JA 264, 1976, 97-116
262C.1.4.5 Eugêne Denis, Le Lokapaññatti et les idêes cosmologiques du bouddhisme ancien. Lille, Paris 1977
262C.1.5 A. Yuyama, "Remarks on the Køkiji fragment of the Lokaprajñapti", in India and the Ancient World: History Trade and Culture before A.D. 650 (Festschrift P.H.L.Eggermont) (Leuven 1987), 215-227.
262C.1.6 Sieglinde Dietz, "Die verschudene versionen der Lokaprajñapti", ZDMG Supplement 7, 1989, 489-496
262C.1.9 Edited and translated by Kalpakam Sankaranarayanam, Kazunobu Matsudu and Motohiri Yoritami ain Lokaprajñapti: A Critical Exposition of Buddhist Cosmology. Mumbai 2002
262D.Author Unknown (508)
1.Sumerugarbhasūtra
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 312
263.Author Unknown (510)
1.Anuttarāśrayasūtra (T.669)
263.1.1 Jikido Takasaki, "Structure of the Anuttāśrayasūtra (Wu-sheng-i-ching)", JIBSt 8.2, 1960, 30-37
264.Author Unknown (510)
1.Devarājapravarasūtra (T.220, 231)
265-266.(unassigned)
267.Aśuvarman (510)
1.Catuḥsatyaśāstra
268.Dignāga or Diṅnāga (510) (NCat IX, 36-37)
1.Marmapradīpa on Vasubandhu's Abhidharmakośa (NCat I, 290; IX, 36)
268.1.1 Summarized by Mark Tatz. EnIndPh9, 2003, 313
2.Ālambanaparīkṣā and Vṛtti thereon (Vijñānavāda) (NCat II, 182; IX, 36)
See e174.6.11, 175.18.10. t175.19.12
268.2.1 Translated into French by Susumu Yamaguchi and Henriette Mayer as "Examen de l'objet de la connaissance", with Dharmapāla's commentary and notes based on Vinītadeva's commentary. JA 214, 1929, 1-66
268.2.2 Edited in Tibetan and translated into German, with Dharmapāla's commentary, by Erich Frauwallner. WZKM 37, 1930, 174-194
268.2.3 Louis de la Vallee Poussin, "Note sur l'Ālambanaparīkṣā", JA 217, 1930, 296-298
268.2.4 Summarized by Stcherbatsky in BL
268.2.5 Restored into Sanskrit and translated, with Dharmapāla's commentary, by N. Aiyasvami Sastri. ALB 3, 1939 - 6, 1942. Reprinted Adyar 1942
268.2.6 Edited by Erich Frauwallner. WZKSOA 3, 1959, 157 ff.
268.2.7 Masaaki Hattori, "Saṃvṛtisat and paramārthasat in Dignāga", F.A.S. 50, 1961, 16-28
268.2.8 Shuyu Kanaoka, "Ālambanaparīkṣā", EnBud 1.3, 1964, 375-376
268.2.9 Summarized and studied in D.J.Kalupahana, "Dignāga's theory of immaterialism", PEW 20, 1970, 121-128
268.2.9.3 Kārikās translated in Alex Wayman, "Yogācāra and the Buddhist logicians", JIABS 2.1, 1979, 68-69
268.2.9.5 Fernando Tola and Carmen Dragonetti, "Ālambanaparīkṣā. Invetigacion sobre el punto de saproyo del conociomiento", BAEO 16, 1980, 91-126
268.2.10 Edited, with edition and translation of Vinītadeva's and Dharmapāla's commentaries, by N. Aiyasvami Sastri. Bulletin of Tibetology 1980, 1-170
268.2.10.1 Vrtti edited in Tibetan and translated in Fernando Tola and Carmen Dragonetti, "Dignaga's Alambanapariksavrtti", JIP 10, 1982, 105-134. Translation reprinted in EnIndPh9, 2003, 314-318
268.2.11 Translated into Danish by Christian Lindtner in LindM 100-107
3.Hastavāla(prakaraṇa) (Vijñānavāda) (NCat IX, 37)
268.3.1 Edited and translated by F.W.Thomas and Hakuju Ui. JRAS 1918, 267-310
268.3.2 Edited in Tibetan by Erich Frauwallner. WZKSOA 3, 1959, 152ff.
268.3.3 Translated by Fernando Tola and Carmen Dragonetti. JRS 8.1, 1980, 18-31. Also OV 1-17 with summary at xxiii-xxviii. Translation reprinted in EnIndPh9, 2003, 318-319
268.3.4 Fernando Tola and Carmen Dragonetti, "Le Hastavālanāma-prakaraṇavṛtti des Ariadeva", BAEO 21, 1985, 137-156
268.3.5 Reconstructed into Sanskrit by Waso Harada. BBSRU 6, 1993, 92-110
4.Hetucakra(nirṇaya) or (-ḍamaru) (NCat IX, 37)
268.4.1 Satischandra Vidyabhusana, "Hetu-cakra-ḍamaru, or Dignāga's Wheel of Reasons, recovered from Labrang in Sikkim", JASBe n.s. 3, 1907, 627-632
268.4.2 Fold-out tabular summary in Vidyabhusana, HIL, Appendix 268.4.3. Reconstructed into Sanskrit by D.C.Chatterji. IHQ 9, 1933, 511-514
268.4.4 Edited in Tibetan by Erich Frauwallner. WZKSOA 3, 1959.
268.4.5 Richard S.Y. Chi, "Buddhist logic and Western thought", BAT 111-119
268.4.6 Eli Franco, "A note on Hetucakradamaru 8-9", JIP 36, 1993, 235-237
268.4.7 Lambert Schmithausen, "A further notes on Hetucakraḍamaru 8-9", JIP 27, 1999, 79-82
268.4.10 Takashi Iwata, "The Pramāṇaviniścaya on the purpose of the division of reasons into nine types in the Hetucakra", WZKSOA 46, 2002, 225-258
268.4.11 Summarized by K.H.Potter. EnIndPh9, 2003, 319-320
5.Nyāyamukha or Nyāyadvāra (NCat IX, 36-37)
See a268.7.28
268.5.1 Portions translated by Hakuju Ui, The Vaiśeṣika Philosophy (Cambridge 1917), 67-68; ChSSSt 22, 1962.
268.5.2 Edited in Chinese and Tibetan and translated by Giuseppe Tucci. MKB 15, 1930. Reprinted San Francisco 1976, 1978
268.5.3 N.Aiyasvami Sastri, "A lost commentary on the Nyāyamukha", SIS 2, 1946, 45-56
268.5.4 Portions translated in Hajime Nakamura, "Buddhist logic expounded by means of symbolic logic", JIBSt 7.1, 1958, 3-21
268.5.5 Shoryu Katsura, "A study of the Nyāyamukha" (in Japanese with English summary). HDBK 38, 1978 - 43, 1984
268.5.6 Edited, with Haribhadra Sūri's Vṛtti, by Sempa Dorje. Bibliotheca Indo-Tibetica 6. Varanasi 1983
268.5.6.5 Alex Wayman, "The Nyāyāvatāra and Buddhist logical works by Dignāga and Ratnārkaraśānti", Nirgrantha 2, 1996, 1-8
268.5.7 Printed in Siddheshwar Rameshwar Bhatt, Buddhist Epistemology. Westport, Conn. 2000
268.5.8 Summarized by K.H.Potter. EnIndPh9, 2003, 320-322
6.Prajñāpāramitāpiṇḍārtha(saṃgraha) (Prajñāpāramitā) (NCat IX, 37)
See e174.3.15
268.6.1 Edited in Sanskrit and Tibetan and translated by Giuseppe Tucci in "Minor Sanskrit texts on the Prajñāpāramitā", JRAS 1947, 53-75
268.6.2 Edited by Erich Frauwallner. WZKSOA 3, 1959, 140-144
268.6.3 Translated by Raniero Gnoli in TBIS, 415-425
268.6.4 Translated by Bhikkhu Pasadika. TWGB 91-106
268.6.4.5 Verses 26-29 translated by Christian Lindtner in WZKSOA 41, 1997, 176
268.6.5 Summarized by K.H.Potter. EnIndPh9, 2003, 322-323
7.Pramāṇasamuccaya and Vṛtti thereon (Vijñānavāda)
See e29.1.41
268.7.1 Satischandra Vidyabhusana, "Dignāga and his Pramāṇasamuccaya", JASBe n.s.1, 1905, 217-227
268.7.2 Summarized in Vidyabhusana, ILMS, in 5 pages
268.7.3 Summarized by Vidyabhusana in HIL, 274-288
268.7.4 Passages edited and translated by H.N.Randle in Fragments from Dignāga. London 1926; Delhi 1981
268.7.4.1 Giuseppe Tucci, "On the fragments from Dinnaga", JRAS 1928, 377-390
268.7.5 D.C.Chatterji, "A note on the Pramāṇasamuccaya", ABORI 11, 1929-30, 195-196
268.7.5.1 Erich Frauwallner, "Bemerkungen zu den Framenten Dignagas", WZKM 37, 1929, 136-139
268.7.6 Chapter One translated into Sanskrit from Tibetan, with Jinendrabuddhi's Viśālāmalāvatī, by H.R.Rangaswami Iyengar. Mysore 1930
268.7.7 I.9-10 translated, with Jinendrabuddhi's Viśālāmalāvatī thereon, by Stcherbatsky in BL II, 377-400
268.7.8 N. Aiyasvami Sastri, "Notes on the Pramāṇasamuccaya of Dignāga", ALB 1, 1937: 26-32, 57-68
268.7.9 Shoho Takemura, "A commentarial inquiry into the original text of Pramāṇasamuccaya" (summary). RDR 350, 1956, 5-6
268.7.10 Masaaki Hattori, "Fragments of Pramāṇasamuccaya", JIBSt 7, 1958, 66-71
268.7.11 Masaaki Hattori, "Dignāga's theory of direct knowledge", BUOP series C, vol. 7, 1959, 1-20
268.7.12 Masaaki Hattori, "Dignāga's criticism of the Sāṃkhya theory of perception", BUOP series C, vol. 8, 1960, 1-32
268.7.13 Masaaki Hattori, "Dignāga's criticism of the Mīmāṃsaka theory of perception", JIBSt 18, 1961, 711-724
268.7.14 Masaaki Hattori, "Pramāṇasamuccaya I.3: Nyāyamatavicāra", MIK 3, 1962, 7-18
268.7.15 Masaaki Hattori, "Pratyakṣābhāsa. Dignāga's view and Dharmakīrti's interpretation", MIK 6-7, 1965, 122-128
268.7.16 Edited in Tibetan and partially translated into Japanese by Hidenori Kitagawa, in Dignāga no Taikei (Kyoto 1965)
268.7.15.1 I.36-47 and II.47-52 translated in Erich Frauwallner, Materialen zur altesten Erkenntnislehre der Karmamimamsa (Wien 1968), pp. 94-106
268.7.17 Pratyakṣa chapter edited in Tibetan and translated by Masaaki Hattori as Dignāga on Perception. HOS 47, 1968
268.7.18 Bimal Krishna Matilal, "Dignāga's remarks on the concept of anumeya", JGJRI 24, 1968, 151-160
268.7.19 Shoryu Katsura, "New Sanskrit fragments of the Pramāṇasamuccaya", JIP 3, 1975, 67-78
268.7.20 Translation of Svārthānumana section in Richard P. Hayes, "Diṅnāga's views on reasoning (svārthānumāna)", JIP 8, 1980, 219-277
268.7.20.1 Chapter Five: Anyapohapariksa, with Jinendrabuddhi's commentary, edited Tibetan with Sanskrit fragments by Masaaki Hattori. Memoirs of the Faculty of Letters, Kyoto University 21, 1982, 103-224
268.7.21 Richard Philip Hayes, On the Nature of Knowledge acquired through Language: A Study of the Apoha Theory in Dignāga's Pramāṇa-samuccaya. Ph.D.Thesis, University of Wisconsin at Madison 1983.
268.7.22 Eli Franco, "On the interpretation of Pramāṇasamuccaya(vṛtti) I, 3d", JIP 12, 1984, 389-400
268.7.23 L. W. van der Kuijp, "Studies in the life and thought of khas-grub-rje I: Mkha-Grub-rje's epistemological oeuvre and his philological remarks on Dignāga's Pramāṇasamuccaya I", BIS 1, 1985, 75-106
268.7.23.1 Mangala R. Chinchore, "Dignaga's criticism of Vasubandhu", Sramana Vidya. Studies in Buddhism. Prof. Jagannath Upadhyaya Commemoratioin Volume I (ed. N.H.Samtani), 47-63
268.7.24 Richard P. Hayes, Dignāga on the Interpretation of Signs. Studies of Classical India 9. Dordrecht 1988. Contains translation of Chapters 2 and 5-7. Two volumes
268.7.24.0 Georges Dreyfus and Christian Lindtner, "The Yogacara philosophy of Dignaga and Dharmakirti", SCEAR 2 (1989), 27-52
268.7.24.1 Bimal Krishna Matilal, "Apoha: Diṅnāga as interpreted by Uddyotakara", IJBS 1, 1989, 53-60
268.7.25 Marek Mejor, "On the date of the Tibetan translations of the Pramāṇasamuccaya and the Pramāṇavārttika", StBudEp 175-197
268.7.25.1 Ole Pind, "Dignāga on śabdasāmānya and śabdaviśeṣa", StBudEp 269-280
268.7.25.2 Ernst Steinkellner, "Two new fragments from the Vrtti on Pramanasamuccaya I.23b--a supplement to MESB V", WZKS 34, 1990, 209-210
268.7.26 Eli Franco, "Did Dignāga accept four types of perception?", JIP 21, 1993, 295-299
268.7.27 Tom J.F. Tillemans, "Pre-Dharmakīrti commentators on Dignāga's definition of a thesis (pakṣatālakṣaṇa)", BF 3, 1994, 295-306
268.7.27.1 Michael Torsten Much, "Samanādhikaranya in Dignaga, Uddyotakara and Dharmakirti", Studia Ind4 163-176
268.7.27.5 Heramba Chatterjee Sastri, "Short notes on Dignaga's definition of perception (pratyaksa)", JDPaliUC 8, 1998, 5-7
268.7.28 Tom Tillemans, "A note on Pramāṅavārttika, Pramāṇasamuccaya and Nyāyamukha. What is the svadharmin in Buddhist logic?", JIABS 21.1, 1998, 111-124
268.7.28.5 Verses 1-11 translated by Alex Wayman in MBL
268.7.29 Ole H. Pind, "Dharmakīrti's interpretation of Pramāṇasamuccayavṛtti V. 36: śabda 'rthānantaranivṛttiviśiṣṭam eva bhāvān āha", DTI 317-332
268.7.30 Noboru Ueda, "On the deduction of vyāpti from the second condition of hetu", DTI 405-417
268.7.35 Masaaki Hattori, "Dignāga's theory of meaning: an annotated translation of the Pramānasamuccayavrtti Chapter V: Anyāpohapariksā (I)", WCSU 137-146
268.7.36 Pratyakṣa chapter summarized by K.H.Potter in EnIndPh9, 2003, 328-337
268.7.37 Svārthānumāna and Apohaparīkṣā chapters summarized by Richard P. Hayes in EnIndPh9, 2003, 337-360
268.7.38 Parārthānumāna, Dṛṣṭānta, and Jāti chapters summarized by Shoryu Katsura in EnIndPh9, 2003, 2342-349 and 360-362
268.7.38.5 Dan Arnold, "Candrakīrti on Dignāga on svalakṣaṇas", JIABS 26.1, 2003, 139-174
268.7.40 Discussed in Anantalal Thakur, ODVS 409
268.7.40.5 Chamali Chowdhury, "Śāntarakṣita's reaffirmation of Dignāga and Dharmakīrti's views of perception and his defense of the Nyayā-Mīmāṃsā criticisms", IIJBS 5, 2004, 21-40
268.7.41 Junjie Chu, "A study of sataimira in Diṅnāga's definition of pseudo-perception (PS 1.7d-8ab)", WZKS 48, 2004, 113-150
268.7.43 H. Yaita, "Tibetan text of Dignāga's Pramāṇasamuccaya, sku-'bum edition", JNIBS 27, 2004, 77-114
268.7.45 Eli Franco, "On Pramāṇasamuccayavṛtti again", JIP 33, 2005, 631-633
8.Trikāla- or Traikālya-parīkṣā (Vijñānavāda)(NCat VIII, 233; IX, 36)
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 367
268.8.1 Edited in Tibetan, with Vākyapadīya III.xiv, by Erich Frauwallner, WZKSOA 3, 1959, 145-152
268.8.2 Mangala R. Chinchoe, "Diṅnāga on trikālaparīkṣā", JASBo 67-68, 1992-93, 118-137. Includes text
9.Upādāyaprajñaptiprakaraṇa
268.9.1 Abridged English translation in Hidenori Kitagawa, "Study of a short philosophical treatise ascribed to Dignāga", SIS 5, 1957, 126-138. Reprinted in H. Kitagawa, Dignāga no Taikei (Kyoto 1965). Sections of this quoted in EnIndPh9, 2003, 362-367
268.9.2 Edited in Tibetan by Erich Frauwallner. WZKSOA 3, 1959, 121 ff.
9A.Dvadasasataka
268.9A.1 Fragments in Ole Pind, "Dignaga on śabdasāmānya and śabdaviśeṣa", StBudEp 269-280
10.General
See a47.16.31; 48.1.74; 175.24:2, 21; 221.1.27; 300.1:2,5,6,7; 344.3.18, 344.9.33. bH3880
268.10.1 H.R.Rangaswami Iyengar, "Kumārila and Dignāga", IHQ 3, 1927, 603-606
268.10.2 A.S.Krishna Rao, "Place of Praśastapāda and Dignāga in the evolution of vyāpti", JOR 1, 1927, 77-86
268.10.3 Stefan Stasiak, "Fallacies and their classification", RO 6, 1928, 191-198
268.10.4 Giuseppe Tucci, "On the fragments from Diṅnāga", JRAS 1928: 377, 905
268.10.5 Erich Frauwallner, "Bemerkungen zu den Fragmenten Dignāgas", WZKM 36, 1929, 136-139
268.10.6 Giuseppe Tucci, "Bhāmaha and Dignāga", IA 59, 1930, 142-147. Reprinted in GTOM 185-194
268.10.7 Th. Stcherbatsky, "Dignāga's theory of perception", TDG 6-7, 1930, 89-130
268.10.8 Erich Frauwallner, "Dignāga und anderes", FMW 237-242
268.10.9 H.R.Rangaswami Iyengar, "Bhartṛhari and Dignāga", JASBo 26, 1951, 147-150
268.10.10 Erich Frauwallner, "Dignāga, sein werk und seine entwicklung", WZKSOA 3, 1959, 83-164
268.10.11 A.K.Sarkar, "Dignāga and the four Buddhist schools", DMDV 339-357
268.10.12 Shri Nivas Shastri, "The theory of cognition (jñāna) propounded by Dignāga", KUJ 3, 1969, 20-25
268.10.13 Masaaki Hattori, "Praśastapāda and Dignāga: a note on the development of the Vaiśeṣika theory of anumāna", WZKSOA 16, 1973, 169-180
268.10.14 Chitrarekha V. Kher, "The concept of pramāṇa according to Dignāga and Dharmakīrti", JOI 22, 1973, 256-264
268.10.15 Chandra Kanta Datta, "The philosophical positions of Dignāga and Śaṃkara", JDBSDU 1, 1974, 5-13
268.10.16 Shiv Kumar, Dignāga: His Life and Works. Ph.D.Thesis, Delhi University 1974
268.10.17 Friedrich V. Lustig, "The great logician guru Dignāga", MB 82, 1974, 264-266
268.10.18 Chhote Lal Tripathi, "The role of apoha in Dignāga's theory of knowledge", EAW 25, 1975, 455-470
268.10.19 Richard S.Y. Chi, "A tentative comparison between the Aristotelean logic and the Dignāgean logic", CIDO 29, 1976, 354-362
268.10.20 Chhote Lal Tripathi, "A rethinking of Dignāga's definition of perception", BandJ 2, 190-195
268.10.21 Sangam Lal Pandey, "Back to Dignāga", in WIP 31-48
268.10.22 Shoryu Katsura, "The apoha theory of Dignāga", JIBSt 28.1, 1979, 16-20
268.10.23 Th. Stcherbatsky, "Dignāga and Dharmakīrti", SHIP 3, 261-271
268.10.24 Shoryu Katsura, "Dignāga's criticism of the Vaiśeṣika theory of inference" (in Japanese with English summary). Tetsugaku 33, 1981, 51-65
268.10.25 Shoryu Katsura, "Dignāga on trairūpya", JIBSt 32.1, 1983, 15-21
268.10.26 Amar Singh, The Heart of Buddhist Philosophy--Diṅnāga and Dharmakīrti. Delhi 1984
268.10.27 V.N.Jha, "Diṅnāga and Indian logic", SILLE 101-109
268.10.28 R.S.Y.Chi, "Dignāga and post-Russell logic", BLE 107-116
268.10.29 Richard P. Hayes, "An interpretation of Diṅnāga's general theory of inference", BLE 31-58
268.10.29.5 Mangala R. Chinchore, "Diṅnāga's criticism of Vasubandhu", SramV 47-64
268.10.30 A.G.S.Kariyawasan, "Dignāga", EnBud 4.4, 1989, 617-625
268.10.30.1 Shoryu Katsura, "Dignāga and Dharmakīrti on apoha", StBudEp 129-146
268.10.31 B.K.Matilal, "Apoha: Uddyotakara's critique of Diṅnāga", IJBS 1.2, 1989, 4-12
268.10.31.1 M.T.Much, "Fragments from Dignāga? Traces of a pre-Dharmakīrti Buddhist polemic against the Nyāya nigrahasthāna", StBudEp 211-220
268.10.32 Lobzang Tsewang, "The mentalism of Dignāga and Dharmakīrti", Tulku 9-16
268.10.33 M.R.Chinchore, "Dignāga on pūrvavat, śeṣavat and sāmānyatodṛṣṭa anumāna", Tulku 104-135
268.10.34 Shoryu Katsura, "Dignāga and Dharmakīrti on adarśanamātra and anupalabdhi", AS 46.1, 1992, 222-231
268.10.35 Ewing Y. Chinn, "The anti-abstractionism of Dignāga and Berkeley", PEW 44, 1994, 55-78
268.10.36 Rita Gupta, "Some remarks on Dignāga and Dharmakīrti's theory of the identity of pramāṇa and pramāṇaphala", VJP 30.2, 1994, A23-41
268.10.37 Chien-Hsing Ho, "How not to avoid speaking--a free exposition of Dignāga's apoha doctrine", JIP 24, 1996, 541-562
268.10.38 K. Kunjunni Raja, "Diṅnāga and Bhartṛhari", BudIA 1996, 143-145
268.10.39 Biswanarayan Shastri, "Diṅnāga and Dharmakīrti on pratyakṣābhāsa (pseudo perception)", Srijnanamrtam 412-422
268.10.40 Alex Wayman, "The Nyāyāvatāra and Buddhist logical works by Dignāga and Ratnākara Śānti", Nirgrantha 2, 1996, 1-8
268.10.42 Richard P. Hayes, "Dignāga", Routledge Encyclopedia of Philosophy 3, 1998, 74-76
268.10.45 Jonardon Ganeri, "Self-intimation, memory and personal identity", JIP 27, 1999, 469-483
268.10.43 Harjeet Singh Gill, "The dialectics of langue and parole–parole parlee and parole parlante", SBFT 98-122
268.10.55 H. S. Prasad, "The phenomenology of meaning: Diṅnāga to Ratnakīrti", JICOR 18.1, 2001, 131-162
268.10.165 Shyamlal Sanyal, "Dignāga's interpretation of the perceptual universe", IndPQ 29.1, 2002, 97-104
268.10.172 Zhihua Yao, "Dign¹ga and four types of perception", JIP 32, 2004, 57-79
268.10.175 Dan Arnold, "Dignāga's transformation of Buddhist Abhidharma", BBB 18-31
268.10.177 Piotr Balcerowicz, "Pramāṇas and language: a dispute between Dignāga, Dharmakīrti and Akalaṅka", JIP 33, 2005, 343-400
268.10.180 Toshikazu Watanabe, "On svarūpa and viśeṣa in Dignāga's theory of pakṣābhāsa", JIBSt 55.3, 2007, 198
268A.Triratnadāsa (510)
1.Prajñāpāramitāpiṇḍārthavivaraṇa
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 368
269.Author Unknown (515)
1.Rājaparikathāratnamālāsūtra (T.1656)
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 368
269.1.1 Translated by Tenzin Gyatso. The Wisdom of Tibet Series 1-2, London 1975
270.Author Unknown (515)
1.Vijayamātṛsiddhi
Cf. EnIndPh9, 203, 369
270A.Author Unknown (515)
1.Vidyāpravartanaśāstra
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 368
270B.Author Unknown (515)
1.Vidyānirdeśaśāstra
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 368
270C.Author Unknown (515)
1.Tryalakṣaṇaśāstra
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 369
270D.Jina (515)
1.Anākaracintārāja
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 369
270E.Jina (515)
1.Muṣṭiprakaraṇaśāstra
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 369
270F.Author Unknown (515)
1.Life of Vasubandhu
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 369
270G.Author Unknown (515)
1.Buddhābhidharmasūtra
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 369
270H.Vasuvarman (515)
1.Catuḥsatyaśāstra
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 369
271.Mahānāma (520)
1.Saddhammappakāśinī on the Paṭisambhidāmagga
See 7.1.4:1-2, 4; 9.1.9. Cf. also EnIndPh9, 2003, 369-370
271.1.1 Edited in Thai script. Bangkok 1921, 1922, 1970, 1980, 1984, 1987, 1988, 1990, 1991
271.1.2 Edited Colombo 1927
271.1.3 Edited by Cintamani Vinayaka Joshi. PTS Text Series 103-105. London 1933, 1947, 1979
271.1.4 Edited in Burmese script. Rangoon 1958
272.Author Unknown (520?)
1.Mahāyānābhisamayasūtra (T.673-674)
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 370-371
273.Author Unknown (520)
1.Mahāghanavyūhasūtra (T.673)
274.Asvabhāva (520)
1.Ṭīkā on Kambala's Ālokamālā
274.1.1 Shodo Kurihara, "Asvabhāva's commentary on Ālokamālā", JIBSt 37.2, 1989, 10-13.
2.Upanibandha on Asaṅga's Mahāyānasaṃgraha (NCat I, 485)
See a174.7.22. t174.7.1. Cf. also EnIndPh9, 2003, 371
274.2.1 Noriaki Hakamaya, "On a versed quoted in the Tibetan translation of the Mahāyānasaṃgrahopanibandhana", JIBSt 22.2, 1974, 17-21
3.Ṭīkā on Asaṅga's Mahāyānasūtrālaṃkāra (NCat I, 485)
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 371
274.3.1 Noriaki Hakamaya, "Asvabhāva's commentary on the Mahāyānasūtrālaṃkāra IX.56-76", JIBSt 20.1, 1971, 23-31
274.3.2 Noriaki Hakamaya, "Asvabhāva's and Sthiramati's commentaries on the Mahāyānasūtrālaṃkāra XIV. 34-35", JIBSt 27.1, 1978, 12-16
274A.Vinītabhadra (520)
1.Bhāṣya on Vasubandhu's Abhidharmakośakārikā
274A.1.1 Summarized by Christian Lindtner. EnIndPh9, 2003, 370
275.Author Unknown (525)
1.Ekādaśamukhihṛdayasūtra (T.1069-1071)
Cf. EnIndPh9, 371
276.Author Unknown (525)
1.Pītapitarasamāgamahṛdayasūtra (T.310(16), 320; Toh. 60)
Cf. EnIndPh9, 371, 370
277.Dramiḍācārya (525?)(NCAT IX, 177)
1.Bhāṣya on Bādarāyaṇa's Brahmasūtras (NCat IX, 178)
2.Bhāṣya on Brahmanandin's Chāndogyopaniṣadvākya (NCat VII,117)
3.General
See a156.1.1
277.3.1 V.Krishnamacharya, "Ṭaṅka and Dramiḍa", Dhruva III, 222-225
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 379
277A.Kambala or Kampala or Kambarambara (Pada) (525)
1.Abhisamayapañjikā (NCat III, 169)
2.Ālokamālā
277A.1.0 Translated by Christian Lindtner. WZKS 41, 1977, 159-206. Reprinted, with translation and an Appendix on cittamātra, Fremont, Calif. 2003
277A.1.1 Discussed in Christian Lindtner, "Adversaria Buddhica", WZKSOA 26, 1982, 167-194
277A.2.2 Edited in Sanskrit and Tibetan and translated by Christian Lindtner, "A treatise on Buddhist idealism: Kambala's Ālokamālā", MiscB 109-219.
277A.2.3 Summarized by Christian Lindtner. EnIndPh9, 2003, 372-377
277A.2.5 Burkhard Scherer, "Kambala's Ālokamālā and the perils of philology", BudSR 23.2, 2006, 259-264
3.(Navaślokī)Piṇḍārtha on Aṣṭasāhasrikāprajñāpāramitāsūtra (NCat III, 169)
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 378-379
277A.3.1 Edited and translated by Tucci in MBT 216-217, 225-231
277A.3.2 Edited by Janardan Pandey. BLSam 1-9
4.Prajñāpāramitoopadeśa (NCat III, 109)
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 379
5.Saptaślokībhagavatīprajñāpāramitāsūtra (NCat III, 169)
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 379
6.Tattvaprabhāṣākaraṇadīpa (NCat III, 168)
Cf. EnIndP, 2003, 379
8.General
277A.8.1 Shodo Kurihara, "The classification of Kambala's school", JIBSt 39.2, 1991, 42-49
278.Praśastapāda (530)
1.Padārthadharmasaṃgraha (Vaiśeṣika)
See EFNW2; a29.1:51, 54, 75. a867.8.1. e29.1:12, 14,31,47. e29.1.30.1, 268.12.1
278.1.1 Edited, with Śrīdhara's Nyāyakandalī, by V.P. Dvivedin. VizSS 6, 1895
278.1.2 Translated, with Śrīdhara's Nyāyakandalī, by Ganganatha Jha. Pan n.s. 25, 1903 - 37, 1915. Reprinted Banaras 1916; Varanasi 1982. Portions reprinted in Source Book 397-423
278.1.3 Edited, with Vyomaśiva's Vyomavatī, Padmanābha Miśra's Setu and Jagadīśa's Sūkti, by Gopinatha Kaviraj and Dundhiraja Sastri. ChSS 61, 1924-31
278.1.4 Edited with Jagadīśa's Sūkti by Kalipada Tarkacarya. SSPS 15, 1925
278.1.5 Portions translated in Henry N. Randle, Indian Logic in the Early Schools. Oxford 1930; Delhi
278.1.6 A.Vasudeva Jha, "A lost work of Praśastapāda", PAIOC 20, 1959, 299-302
278.1.7 Edited with Śrīdhara's Nyāyakandalī by Durgadhara Jha Sarma. Ganganatha Jha Granthamala l, Varanasi 1963, 1977, 1997
278.1.8 George Chemparathy, "The various names for the famous Vaiśeṣika work of Praśastapāda", Rtam 1.1, 1960, 23-28
278.1.9 George Chemparathy, "Praśastapāda and his other names", IIJ 12, 1970, 241-254
278.1.10 Lambert Schmithausen, "Zur Lehre von der vorstellungsfreien Wahrnehmung bei Praśastapāda", WZKSOA 14, 1970, 125-130
278.1.11 Edited, with Udayana's Kiraṇāvalī and Lakṣaṇāvalī, by J.S.Jetly. GOS 154, 1971
278.1.12 Kadambari Haravu, "Concept of matter in the Vaiśeṣika darśana and the Praśastapāda Bhāṣya from the perspective of physics", JKUOML 20, 1975, 21-39
278.1.13 Kadambari Haravu, "Concept of space in the Vaiśeṣika darśana and the Praśastapāda Bhāṣya compared with those of physics", JKUOML 20, 1975, 77-92
278.1.14 Selections translated in HTR 106-107
278.1.15 Summarized by Karl H. Potter. EnIndPh2, 1977, 282-303
278.1.16 Wilhelm Halbfass, "Praśastapāda's concept of substance (dravya)", LSFV 537-544
278.1.16.1 Edited with Śrīdhara's Nyāyakandalī, Naracandra Sūri's Ṭippanī, Rājaśekhara Suri Pañjikā, and Śidīla Vommideva's Nyāyakusumodgama, by J.S.Jetly and Vasant G. Parikh. GOS 14, 1991.
278.1.16.2 S. Peeru Kanna, The Critical Study of Praśastapādabhāṣya. Delhi 1992
278.1.17 Masanobu Nozawa, "Praśastapāda's theory of fallacious reasons", ZDMG Supplement 9, 1992, 657-658
278.1.18 Claudius Nenninger, Aus guten Grund. Praśastapādas anumāna-Lehre und die drei Bedingungen der logischen Grundern. Reinbek 1992
278.1.19 Johannes Bronkhorst and Yves Ramseier, Word Index to the Praśastapādabhāṣya. Delhi 1994
278.1.19.1.Claus Oetke, "Praśastapāda's views on the 'antinomic reason' and their consequences for the theory of default reasoning", AS 48, 1994, 845-866
278.1.20 Yasuhiro Okazaka, "Praśastapāda's definition of sense-organs: a note on the development of early Vaiśeṣika", JIBSt 42.2, 1994, 4-8
278.1.21 Edited with Śrīdhara's Nyāyakandalī by Durgadhara Jha Sarma. Varanasi 1997
278.1.22 Victoria Lyssenko, "La connaissance suprarationale chez Praśastapāda", AS 52, 1998, 85-116
278.1.30 Johannes Bronkhorst, "Water and ocean", IIJ 45.1, 2002, 45-49
278.1.33 Daya Krishna, "Praśastapāda's mapping of the realm of qualities: a neglected chapter in Indian philosophy", JICPR 20.1, 2003, 115-124. Reprinted in IPACP
278.1.35 Discussed in Anantalal Thakur, ODVS 165-250
278.1.38 Katsunori Hirano, "The genesis of commentary texts in an ancient India: from a quotation theory viewpoint", CTCIP 37-46
278.1.40 Hirofumi Miura, "the causal distinction of cognition in Praśastapādabhāṣya", JIBSt 54.3, 2006, 154-155
278.1.45 Fernando Tola and Carmen Dragonetti, "Aristotle and Praśastapāda on the genesis of universals", ITaur 33, 2007, 319-334
278A.Dharmadāsa (530)
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 379
278B.Author Unknown (530)
1.Suvikrāntavikramaṇiparipṛcchāsūtra (Prajñāpāramitā)
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 379-380
278B.1.1 Tokumyo Matsumoto, Die Prajñāpāramitā-Literatur. Nebst einem Specimen der Suvikrāntavikrama-Prajñā-pāramitā. BonnOS 1, Stuttgart 1932
278B.1.2 Tokumyo Matsumoto, "The second chapter of the Suvikrānta- vikramaparipṛcchā" in P. Kahle, Studien zur Geschichte und Kultur des Nahen und Fernen Ostens
278B.1.3 Edited by Tokumyo Matsumoto, Āryasuvikrānta vikramīparipṛcchā-prajñā-pāramitā nirdeśa sārdhavisāhasrikā bhāgavatārya prajñāpradīpa Tokyo 1956
278B.1.4 Edited by Ryusho Hikata Fukuoka Committee for Dr. Hikata's Retirement. Fukuoka 1958. Reprinted in Mahayanasutrasamgraha 1, 1961. Summary in JSR 11, 1960, 49-51
278B.1.5 Parts translated in Conze, Selected Sayings
278B.1.6 Hiromasa Tosaki, "Remarks on J.W.de Jong's notes on the Suvikrāntavikramaṇiparipṛcchā-Prajñāpāramitā text", JIBSt 31.2, 1983, 8-12
278C.Guṇamati or Guṇaśrī (530)
1.Lakṣānusāriniṭīkā
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 380-381
278C.1.1 Section translated in Hakuju Ui, The Vaiśeṣika Philosophy (Cambridge 1917), 74-77; ChSSSt 22, 1962.
278C.1.2 Megumu Honda, "Sāṃkhya reported by Paramārtha in the Buddhist canon", JIBSt 21.1, 1972, 7-18
2.Pratītyasamutpādāivibhaṅganirdeśaṭīkā
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 381
3.Ṭīkā on Vasubandhu's Vyākhyāyukti
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 381
278D.Author Unknown (534)
1.Padmamukha- or Puṇḍarīkamukha-śāstra
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 382
279.Author Unknown (535)
1.Mahākaruṇāpuṇḍarīkasūtra (T.380; Toh. 111)
279.1.1 Chapter 1 translated into French in Feer, 158-175
279.1.2 Leon Feer, "Entretiens du Bouddha et le Brahma, sur l'origine des choses, traduit du tibetain", CIDO Paris 1873, 473-496
281.Author Unknown (535)
1.Śrīguptasūtra (T.545)
282.Author Unkown (535)
1.Tathāgataśrīsamayasūtra (T.397(16))
283.Author Unknown (536)
1.Sūtra on the good qualities of rare comparison
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 382
283A.Author Unknown (537)
1.Dvādaśabuddhakasūtra (T.1348-1349)
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 382
283AA.Author Unknown (537)
1.Amoghapāśahṛdayasūtra
Cf. EnIndPh9, 200-3, 382
283B.Author Unknown (546)
1.Agrapradīpadhāraṇīvidyārāasūtra
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 383
284.Author Unknown (550)
1.Dharmadhātuprakṛtyasambhedanirdeśasūtra (T.310(8))
Cf. EnIndPh9, 200-3, 382
286.Author Unknown (540)
1.Candrottarādikārikāvyākaraṇasūtra (T.480)
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 382
286.1.1 Ratna Handurakande, "Candrottarādikārikāvyākaraṇasūtra", EnBud 3.4, 1977, 657
286.1.2 Partly translated in Paul 193-199 and the German translation, 199-205
286.1.3 Jens Braarvig and Paul Harrison, "Candrottarādikāvyākaraṇa", ManSC 2, 51-68
287.Author Unknown (541)
1.Bhadrapālaśreṣṭhiparipṛcchāsūtra (T.310(39), 347; Toh.83)
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 382
287.1.1 Translated Treasury 223-237
287A.Author Unknown (544)
1.Pañcasahasrapañcaśatabuddhanāmasūtra
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 383
287B.Author Unknown (544)
1.Acintyaguṇasarvabuddhaparigrahasūtra
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 383
287C.Author Unknown (544)
1.Mahādharmolkādhāraṇīsūtra
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 383
287D.Author Unknown (545)
1.Sarvadharmāvacārasūtra
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 383
287E.Author Unknown (545)
1.Mahāsannipātāvadānarājasūtra
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 383
287F.Author Unknown (546)
1.Mahābāladharmaikadhāraṇīsūtra
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 383
287G.Author Unknown (546)
1.Sūtra on the Bodhisattva Akiñcana
Cf. EnIndPh2003, 384
289.Author Unknown (550)
1.Karmāvaraṇapratipraśrabdhisūtra (T.1493)
290.Author Unknown (550)
1.Mañjuśrīvihārasūtra (T.470-471)
292.Author Unknown (550)
1.Varmavyūhanirdeśasūtra (T.310(7))
293.Mallavādin Kṣamāśramaṇa (550)
1. (Dvādaśāra) Nayacakra (Jain)
See e29.1.41
293.1.1 Edited, with Siṃhasūragaṇi's Nyāyāgamānusāriṇī, by Vijayalabdhisuri. Chhani 1948-60. Four parts
293.1.2 Jambuvijaya Muni, "Literature known to Mallavādi, the author of Nayacakra, and the commentator Siṃhasūragaṇi", PAIOC 14.3, Summaries 1948, 15
293.1.3 Edited, with Siṃhasūragaṇi's Nyāyāgamānusāriṇī, by M. Caturvijayaji and L.B.Gandhi. GOS 116, 1952
293.1.4 Erich Frauwallner, "The edition of Mallavādī's Dvādaśāranayacakram", WZKSOA 1, 1957, 147-152
293.1.5 Edited, with Siṃhasūragaṇi's Nyāyāgamānusāriṇī, by Jambuvijaya Muni. Two parts. Bhavnagar 1976
293.1.6 Summarized in George B. Burch, "Seven-valued logic in Jain philosophy", IPQ 4.1, 1964, 68-93
293.1.7 Edited, with Siṃhasūragaṇi's commentary, by Muni Jambuvijaya. Bhavnagar 1966-1988. Three volumes
293.1.8 Summarized in K.K.Dixit, Jaina Ontology (LDS 31, 1971), 114-122
293.1.9 A. Wezler, "Studien zum Dvādaśāranayacakra des Śvetāmbara Mallavādin", Gedankenschrift für Ludwig Alsdorf. Alt- und Neu-Indische Studien herausgegeben vom Seminar fur Kultur und Geschichte Indiens an der Universitat Hamburg, 23. Studien zum Jainismus und Buddhismus (Wiesbaden, n.d.), 359-408.
293.1.10 Aruna Ranjan Mishra, "Mallavādi Kṣamāśramaṇa on the self-effulgence of objects", JLE 112-122
293.1.15 Albrecht Wiezler, "Studien zum Dvādaśaranayacakra des Śvetāmbara Mallavādin I: The twelve aras of the Dvāsdaśara-naya-cakra and their relation to the canon as seen by Mallavādin", EJPR 13-23
293.1.20 Summarized by Erich Frauwallner, Jambuvijaya, Jan Willem de Jong and K.K.Dixit. EnIndPh10, 2007, 201-210
294.Bhavya or Bhāvaviveka (550)
See a236.1.8
1.Karatalaratna (Mādhyamika) (NCat III, 177)
294.1.1 Louis de la Vallee Poussin, "L'auteur du joyau dans la main", MCB 2, 1932-33, 60-67
294.1.2 Translated into French by Louis de la Vallee Poussin. MCB 2, 1932-33, 60-67
294.1.3 Louis de la Vallee Poussin, "Mādhyamikas and the tathatā", IHQ 9, 1933, 30-31
294.1.4 Restored from Chinese into Sanskrit and summarized in 32 pages by N.Aiyasvami Sastri. VBA 2, 1949, 1-124. Reprinted as VBS 9, 1949
294.1.5 Summarized by N.Aiyasvami Sastri, "Bhāvaviveka and his method of exposition", PAIOC 10, 1941, 285-295
294.1.6 Summaried by K.H.Potter. EnIndPh9, 2003, 384=397
2.Madhyamakahṛdaya and Tarkajvālā on it (Madhyamaka) (NCat VIII,112)
See a29.1.70
294.2.1 Ślokas of Chapter 5 edited in Tibetan and translated into Japanese by Susumu Yamaguchi in his Bukkyo ni okeru Mu to U tono Tairon. Kyoto 1941
294.2.2 Chapter 8, kārikās 1-16 edited in Tibetan by Hajime Nakamura. ?IIJ 2, 1958, 181-190
294.2.3 Chapter 8, kārikās 1-16 reconstructed into Sanskrit, with translation of autocommentary thereon, by V.V.Gokhale. IIJ 2, 1958, 165-180. Gokhale's copy of text photographed, published by Shrikant S. Bahulkar, Sambhasa 15, 1994
294.2.4 Kārikās of Chapter 5 edited in Tibetan and partially translated by V.V.Gokhale. IIJ 5, 1962, 271-275
294.2.5 Hajime Nakamura, "The Vedānta as presented by Bhavya", JOI 14, 1965, 287-296
294.2.6 V.V.Gokhale, "The second chapter of Bhavya's Madhyamakahṛdaya", IIJ 24, 1972, 40-45
294.2.7 Shinjo Kawasaki, "A reference to māyā in the Tibetan translation of the Tarkajvālā", JIBSt 23.2, 1975, 14-20
294.2.8 Shinjo Kawasaki, "Quotations in the Mīmāṃsā chapter of Bhavya's Madhyamakahṛdayakārikā", JIBSt 22.2, 1974, 1-8
294.2.9 Chapter 8 partially edited in Sanskrit and Tibetan in Hajime Nakamura, "The Vedāntic chapter of Bhavya's Madhyamakahṛdaya", ALB 39, 1975, 300-329
294.2.10 Shotaro Iida, "The nature of saṃvṛti and the relationship of paramārtha to it in Svātantrika-Mādhyamika", PTT 64-77
294.2.11 Nathan Katz, "An appraisal of the Sautrāntika-Prāsaṅgika debates", PEW 26, 1976, 253-268
294.2.11.1 Shinjo Kawasaki, "The Mīmāṃsā chapter of Bhavya's Madhyamaka-hṛdaya-kārikā--text and translation", Studies 1976, Institute of Philosophy, University of Tsukuba (Sept. 1977), pp. 1-15; Studies No. 12 (March 1987), pp. 1-23; Studies No. 13 (March 1988), pp. 1-42
294.2.12 Kārikās of Chapter One, translated. with translation of Tarkajvālā thereon, by V.V.Gokhale and S.S.Bahulkar. MiscB 76-108
294.2.13 Olle Qvarnstrom, "The Vedāntatattvaviniścaya-chapter of Bhavya's Mādhyamikahṛdayakārikā", WZKS 23, 1989; WZKSOA 34, 1990, 123-146. Also Lund Studies in African and South Asian Religions, Volume 4, Lund 1989
294.2.13.1 Chapters 9-10 edited in Shinjo Kawasaki, Issaicho shiso no kenkyu. Tokyo 1992
294.2.13.5 Shinjo Kawasaki, "Discrepancies in the Sansktit and Tibetan texts of Bhavya's Madhyamaka-hṛdaya-Tarkajvālā (the IXthe and Xth chapters", Tibetan Studies 5.1, 1992, 131-144
294.2.14 Shinjo Kawasaki, "Principle of life according to Bhavya", RIBP 69-82
294.2.15.Malcolm David Eckel, To See the Buddha: A Philosopher''s Quest for the Meaning of Emptiness. Princeton, N.J. 1994
294.2.16 Annette L. Heitmann, "Erörterungen zum Begriff "Gnosis" (jñāna), wie er in den Madhyamakahṛdayakārikā und der in tibetischer Übersetzung erhaltenen Tarkajvālā I-V definiert wird", ActO 56, 1995, 144-161
294.2.17 Annette L. Heitmann, "Momentane (*ekakṣaṇa) Gnosis (jñāna) im Sinne der Madhyamakahṛdayakārikā und der in tibetischer Übersetzung vorleigenden Tarkajvālā I-IV", AS 49.2, 1995, 391-427
294.2.17.5 Edited b Christian Lindtner. Adyar Library Pamphlet Seires 48. Madras 1995
294.2.18 Chapter Five (Yogācāratattvaviniścaya) edited by Christian Lindtner. ALB 59, 1995, 37-65
294.2.18.5 Selections from Chapter Four translated in Peter Skilling, "Citations 'from the scriptures of the 'eighteen schools' in the Tarkajvālā", BVSK 605-614
294.2.18.8 Chapters 1-3 translated int o German by Annette L. Heitmann. Copenhagen 1998
294.2.19 Chapters 1-5, 8-9 translated into Danish by Christian Lindtner in LindH 118-241
294.2.19.1 Jens Braarvig, "Bhavya on mantras: apologetic endeavours on behalf of the Mahayana", StudiaInd4 31-40
294.2.19.2 Edition and translation of Chapter 9 in Christian Lindtner, "Bhavya on Mimamsa", StudiaInd4 91-124; also ALB 63, 1999, 245-304
294.2.20 Book III.137-146 translated by Chikefumi Watanabe. JIABS 21.1, 1998, 125-156
294.2.25 Chikafumi Watanabe, "Bhaviveka on invalidations by pratyaksa and pratīti: the Madhyamakahrdayakarika III.176-181", ABORI 80, 2000, 155-166
294.2.27 Edited by Chistian Lindtner. Adyar Library Series 123, 2001
294.2.28 Summarized by V.V.ogokhale, Shotaro Iida, Jay Hirabayashi, Christian Lindtner, K.H.Potter and Olle Qvarnstrom. EnIndPh9, 200-3, 397-422
3.Prajñāpradīpa or Madhyamakaratnapradīpa on Nāgārjuna's Madhyamakakārikās
See a47.4,69; e47.4:9,61
294.3.1 Five stanzas translated in Stanislas Schayer, "Notes and queries on Buddhism", RO 11, 1936, 206-213
294.3.2 Chapter One translated into German by Yuichi Kajiyama. WZKSOA 7, 1963 - 8, 1964. Reprinted StudBudPhilos 417-474
294.3.3 Toyoki Mitsukawa, "On the philosophical background of Bhāvaviveka and Candrakīrti--from the citation of sūtras and treatises in their commentaries on the Mūlamadhyamakakārikās" (summary). RDR 376, 1964, 74-75
294.3.4 Masamichi Ichigo, "Mādhyamika's argument against the soul-theory of the Vaiśeṣika and Naiyāyika--as it appears in Prajñāpradīpa xviii" (summary). ToG 34, 1967, 7-8
294.3.5 Ryushin Uryuzu, "The middle stanzas XXIV-6", JIBSt 36, 1970, 1009-1017
294.3.6 Yasunori Ejima, "A study on Bhāvaviveka (1): Śūnyatā and logic" (in Japanese with English summary). TBKK 51, 1970, 39-177
294.3.7 Koichi Furusake, "A study of the two-fold truth philosophy in Mahāyāna Buddhism with special reference to the Āryasatyaparīkṣā chapter of the Prajñāpradīpa" (in Japanese with English summary). OKDKH 25.3, 1977, 117-131
294.3.8 Shotaro Iida, Reason and Emptiness. A Study in Logic and Mysticism. Tokyo 1980
294.3.10 R.N.Pandey, "Bhāvaviveka's philosophical criticism of reductio ad absurdum", JDBSDU 7, 1983, 13-20
294.3.11 Koichi Furusaka, "The sūtra quoted in the Prajñāpradīpa and a concordance of its two Tibetan translations" (in Japanese with English summary). OKDKJ 32.1, 1984, 25-36
294.3.13 M.David Eckel, "Bhāvaviveka's critique of Yogācāra philosophy in Chapter 25 of the Prajñāpradīpa", MiscB 25-75
294.3.15 William Longstreet Ames, Bhāvaviveka's Prajñāpradīpa: Six Chapters. Ph.D.Thesis, University of Washington 1986
294.3.15.1 Daniel Ferrer, "Bhāvaviveka's abridged meaning of the middle position", TJ 17.2, 1992, 52-55
294.3.16 Shotaro Iida, "Buddhist critique of Sāṃkhya-Yoga--Aśvaghoṣa and Bhāvaviveka", ZDMG Supplement 9, 1992, 176-177
294.3.17 Chapter One translated by William L. Ames, JIP 21, 1993, 209-260; 22, 1994, 93-116
294.3.18 Chapter Two translated by William L. Ames, JIP 23, 1995, 295-365
294.3.19 Annette L. Heitmann, Testcritischen Beitrag zu Bhavyas Madhyamakakarikas, Kapital 1-3: Ausgabe der Textes nach indischen und tibetschen Quelle. Copenhagen 1998
294.3.20 Summaried by C.Lindtner and K.H.Potter. EnIndPh9, 2003, 422-442
294.3.25 Koichi Furusaka, "Views of the four noble truths in Mahāyāna Buddhist sūtra texts quoted in the Āryasatyaparīkṣā chapter of the Prajñāpradīpa", JIBSt 54.3, 2006, 160
294.3.28 Hirotaka Miiyamoto, "Bhāviveka's understanding of vyavahārasatya as expressedin the fifteenth chapter of his Prajñāpradīpa: in liglht of the Sautrāntika theory in the Abhidharmakośabhāṣya", JIBSt 54.3, 2006, 170-171
294.3.30 Chiaki Ozawa, "Sāpekṣa in the Prajñāpradīpa", JIBSt 55.3, 2007, 201
4.Madhyamakārthasaṃgraha
294.4.1 Restored into Sanskrit and translated by N.Aiyasvami Sastri. JOR 5, 1931, 41-49
294.4.2 Translated in Christian Lindtner, "Atisa's introduction to the two truths", JIP 7, 1981, 200. This reprinted in EnBudP 9, 2003, 442-443
294.4.3 Translated by Daniel Ferrer, TJ 17.2, 1992, 52-55
4A.Madhyamakaratnapradīpa
294.4A.1 Christian Lindtner, "On the authority of Madhyamakaratnapradīpa" in his "Adversaria Buddhica", WZKSOA 26, 1981, 167-194
294.4A.2 Christian Lindtner, "On Bhavya's Madhyamakaratnapradīpa", ITaur 12, 1984, 163184
294.4A.2.5 .Christian Lindtner, "Bhavya's critique of Yogacara in the Madhyamakaratnapradipa, Chapter IV", BLE 239-264
294.4A.3 Christian Lindtner, "Bhavya's critique of Yogācāra in I-V definiert wird", ActO 56, 1995, 144-161.8l
294.4A.4 Summarized by Christian Lindtner. EnIndPh9, 2003, 443-457
294.4A.6 Izumi Miyazaki, "On 'bdag gis bkod pa rTag ge 'bar ba' in the Madhyamakaratnapadīpa", JIBSt 55.3, 2007, 200-201
5.General
See a200.1.8. a47.16.31. b50.2.16.1
294.5.1 Louis de la Vallee Poussin, "Nanjio's 1185: Bhāvaviveka", JRAS 1903, 581-583
294.5.1.5 N. Aiyasvami Shastri, "Bhāvaviveka and his method of exposition", PAIOC 10, 1941, 286-295
294.5.2 Sebun Fukaura, "Controversy between Dharmapāla and Bhāvaviveka" (summary), RDR 345, 1952
294.5.3 Yuichi Kajiyama, "Bhāvaviveka and the Prāsaṅgika school", NNMRP I, 289-331
294.5.3.5 Yuichi Kajiyama, "An examination of the syllogism of Bhāvaviveka", NBGKN 26, 1961, 1-16
294.5.4 Megumu Honda, "Sāṃkhya philosophy described by its opponent Bhavya", JIBSt 31, 1967, 436-442
294.5.5 Shotaro Iida, An Introduction to Svātantrika-Mādhyamika. Ph.D.Thesis, University of Wisconsin 1968; Ann Arbor 1997
294.5.6 Y.Kajiyama, "Bhāvaviveka, Sthiramati and Dharmapāla", WZKSOA 12-13, 1968-69, 193-203. Reprinted StudBudPhilos 177-188
294.5.7 Takeki Okuzumi, "Candrakīrti's refutation of Bhāvaviveka in the first chapter of the Prasannapadā", JIBSt 33, 1968, 136-138
294.5.8 Upali Karunaratne, "Bhāvaviveka", EnBud 3.1, 1971, 21-22
294.5.9 Shotaro Iida, "Āgama (scripture) and yukti (reason) in Bhāvaviveka", in Treatises on Indian and Buddhist Studies: A Commemoration Volume for the 70th Birthday of Dr. Prof. E. Kanakura (Tokyo 1971), 85-91
294.5.10 Malcolm D. Eckel, "Bhāvaviveka and early Mādhyamika theories of language", PEW 23, 1978, 323-328
294.5.10.1 Malcolm David Eckel, A Question of Nihilism: Bhāvaviveka's Response to the Fundamental Problem of Mādhyamika Philosophy. Ph.D.Thesis, Harvard University 1980
294.5.10.5 Shotaro Iida, "Bhāvaviveka's argument for the omniscience of the Buddha", Proceedings of the Fifth World Sanskrit Conference. International Association of Sanskrit Studies. Hq. R.N.Dandekar and P.D.Navathe (New Delhi 1981), 524-535
294.5.10.7 Christian Llindtner, "Materials for the study of Bhavya", Kalyanamitraraganam 179-202
294.5.11 M. David Eckel, "Bhāvaviveka's vision of reality: structure and metaphor in a Buddhist philosophical system", JAAR 55, 1987, 39-56.
294.5.11.1 Chrisian Lindtner, "Bhavya, the logician", ALB 50, 1986, 58-84; also VBA n.s. 2, 1990, 30-50
294.5.12 John F.G. Gregory, The Divining of the Middle Path: Bhāvaviveka and the Prajñāpāramitā Tradition. Ph.D.Thesis, University of Hawaii 1987
294.5.13 J. Sitaramamma, "Bhāvaviveka: his life and works", QJMS 79, 1988, 384-390
294.5.14 D. Seyfort Ruegg, "On the authorship of some works ascribed to Bhāvaviveka/Bhavya", 7WSC2 59-71
294.5.15.3 Tom J. F. Tillemans, "Tsong kha pa et al on the Bhāvaviveka-Candrakīrti debate", Tibetan Studies 5.1, 1992, 315-326
294.5.15.5 John P. Keenan, Dharmapāla's Yogācāra Critique of Bhāvaviveka's Explanation of Emptiness. Lewiston, 1997
294.5.15.7 P. Hoornaert, "Can emptiness be proven? the alogicality of Bhāvaviveka's proof of emptiness", in Encounter of Wisdom between Buddhism and Science. Essays in Honour of Professor Keisho Tsukamoto on his Sixtieth Birthday (Tokyo 1993), 3-24
294.5.16.Musashi Tachikawa, "The concept of universal in Bhāvaviveka's writings", AS 48, 1994, 891-902
294.5.16.2 Christian Lindtner, "Bhavya, Legs ldan 'byud–quoting and quoted", SCEAR 8, 1995, 90-97
294.5.16.5 A. L. Heitmann, "Bibliographie zur Bhavya-Literature", GSBL 106-154
294.5.17 Vincent Eltschinger, "Bhāvaviveka et Dharmakīrti sur āgama et contre la Mīmāṃsā", AS 52, 1998, 57-84
294.5.18 Akira Saito, "Bhāvaviveka and the Madhy(anta)-vibhāga-(bhāṣya)", JIBSt 46.2, 1998, 23-29
294.5.21 Masamichi ichigo, "Sāntaraksita and Bhāvaviveka as opponents of the Mādhyamika in the Madhyamakāloka", WCSU 147-170
294.5.23 Paul Williams, "Bhāvaviveka", EnB 1, 2001, 42
294.5.23.5 Jindo Nagashima, "The distinction between Svātantrika and Prāsaṅgika in late Madhyamaka: Atīśa and Bhavya as Prāsaṅgika", Sambhasa 24, 2004, 65-98
294.5.24 Akira Saito, "Bhāviveka's theory of meaning", JIBSt 52.2, 2004, 24-31
294.5.27 Akira Saito, "Bhāviveka's theory of perception", JIBSt 54.3, 2006, 100-108
294.5.30 Mayumi Nasu, "The connection between ultimate truth and analysis in Bhāvaviveka's theory of two truths", BGP2, 43-53
294.5.35 Charles Goodman, "Bhāvaviveka's arguments for emptiness", AsPOxford 18, 2008, 167-184
295.Author Unknown (550)
1.Maṇimekhalai (in Tamil)
295.1.1 Hermann Jacobi, "Über des Alter der Maṇimekhalai", ZII 5, 1927, 293-310. Reprinted in HJKS.
295.1.2 K.G.Sesha Aiyar, "The date of the Maṇimekhalai", JOR 1, 1927, 321-329
295.1.3 K.V.Ramchandran, "The age of Maṇimekhalai", JOR 2, 1928, 220-224
295.1.3.1 Sakkottai Krishnaswami Aiyangar, Manimekhalai in its Historical Setting. London 1928
295.1.4 N.Aiyasvami Sastri, "Maṇimekhalai's contributions to Indian logic", JOR 11, 1937, 116-128
295.1.5 N.Aiyasvami Sastri, "Central teachings of the Maṇimekhalai", JSVRI 2, 1941, 17-43
295.1.5.1 Summarized in V. Kanakasabhai, The Tamils Eighteen Hundred Years Ago. Second edition 1956
295.1.5.2 V. Kanakasabhai, The Great Twin-Epics of Tamil. Tirunelveli 1956
295.1.6 N.Balusvamy, Studies in Maṇimekhalai. Madurai 1965
295.1.6.1 Extracts translated by Rao Bahadur Krishnaswamy Aiyangar in Hissale Swami Dhammaratna, Buddhism in South India. Kandy 1968
295.1.7 V.Varadachari, "Treatment of the schools of religion and philosophy in the Maṇimekhalai". SVUOJ 14, 1971, 9-26
295.1.8 Prema Nandakumar, "Maṇimekhalai", AP 46, 1975, 20-25
295.1.9 S.N.Kandaswamy, Buddhism as Expounded in Maṇimekhalai. Annamalainagar 1978
295.1.10 Shu Hikosaku, "Tracing the origin of the Tamil epic Maṇimekhalai", JASSt 1.1, 1983, 84-115
295.1.11 Paula Sue Richman, The Religious Rhetoric in Maṇimekhalai. Ph.D.Thesis, University of Chicago, 1983
295.1.11.5 Ruth Wallden, "The presentation of Sśṃkhya in the Maṇimekhalai", Kalyanamitraraganam 303-312
295.1.12 Translated into French by A. Danielou with T.V.Gopala Iyer, Maṇimekhalai ou le scandal de la vertu du Prince-Marchand Shattan. Paris 1987. This translated into English by T.V.Gopala Iyer, New York 1989; New Delhi 1993. Translated into Spanish, Palma de Mallorca 2007
295.1.13 Shu Hikosaka, "The age of Cilappatikaman and Maṇimekhalai", JASSt 4.2, 1988, 91-114
295.1.14 Paula S. Richman, Women, Branch Stories, and Religious Rhetoric in a Tamil Buddhist Text. Syracuse 1988
295.1.15 A. Veluppillai, "The Maṇimekhalai: historical background and organization of Buddhism", JAsSt 9, 1991, 1-22
295.1.15.5 Ruth Wallden, "Materialism as expounded in the Maṇimekhalai, the Nīlakeci and the Civananacittiyar", OS 60, 1991, 246-251
295.1.16 G. John Samuel, "Cilapattikāram and Maṇimekhalai--the earliest Tamil epics of the heterdoxies", JASSt 11.2, 1994, 66-4
295.1.17 S. N. Kandaswamy, "Mahāyāna Buddhism in Maṇimekhalai", Bud IA 1996, 166-196
295.1.18 Peter Schalk, "A Buddhist woman's path to enlightenment", Acta Universitatis Uppsaliensis, Historia-Religionum 13 (Uppsala 1997), 223-239
295.1.19 Portions summarized by Paula Richman. EnIndPh9, 2003, 457-462
296.Bhadrabāhu (550)
1.Āvaśyakasūtraniryukti (Jain)
296.1.1 Edited, with Haribhadra Sūri's Śiṣyahita, by Ernst Leumann. AKM 10.2, 1897
296.1.1.5 Edited, with Jinabhadra Gani's and Maladhari Hemacandra's commentaries, by Hargovinda Dasa. YJG 25, 27-28, 31, 33, 35, 37, 39, 1911-14
296.1.2 Edited, with Haribhadra Sūri's Śiṣyahita, by Sagarananda. AgSS (Bombay 1916-1917). Corrected reprint 1981
296.1.2.1 Edited by Amolaka Rsiji Maharaja. Sikandarabad 1919
296.1.3 Edited, with Haribhadra Sūri's Śiṣyahita and Maladhāri Hemacandra's Ṭippaṇa, by Kumudavijaya. DLP 53, 1920, 1988
296.1.3.1 Edited with Jinadāsa Gaṇi's Cūrṇī, by Ganadhara Gautama Svami. 2 volumes. Indore 1928-29
296.1.3.2 Sections translated into German, with Haribhadra Sūri's Śiṣyahita and Maladhāri Hemacandra's Ṭippaṇa, by Walther Schubring in Ernst Leumann's Übersicht über die Āvaśyaka-Literature. Hamburg 1934.
296.1.3.3 Edited, with Jinabhadra's Viśeṣāvāśyakabhāṣya and Koṭyācārya's commentary. ASS 1936-37
296.1.3.3.1 Edited, with Malayagiri's commentary, in three volumes. Bombay 1936
296.1.3.4 Edited with Maṇikyaśekhara Sūri's Dīpikā, by Gopipura. Three volumes. Surat 1939-40
296.1.3.5 Edited by Ghasilalaji. 1951, 1958
296.1.3.6 Walther Schrubing, "150 Strophen Niryukti: ein Blick in die Jaina-Scholastik". BonnOS, New Series 3, 1955, 297-319. Translated in Walther Schubring, Kleine Schriften 321-343
296.1.4.1 Edited, with Jinabhadra Gani and Maladhari Hemacandra's commentaries, by Rajendravijaya. Two volumes. 1962-63
296.1.4.2 Edited, with Haribhadra Sūri's Vṛtti and Jñānasāgara Sūri's Avacūri. DLJP 108, Surat 1965.
296.1.4.3 Katrin Verclas, Die Āvaśyaka-Erzählungen über die Upasargas des Mahāvīra im Vergleich mit dem Versuchen des Bodhisattva in der buddhistischen Literature. Ph.D.Dissertation, U. of Hamburg 1978
296.1.5 Edited, with Haribhadra Sūri's Ṭīkā by Merukala Kanayalala Kothari. 1979
296.1.6 Edited, with Haribhadra Sūri's Śiṣyahita. Two volumes. Bombay 1981
296.1.7 Nalini Balbir, Études d'exegèse jaina: les Āvaśyaka.Thèse de Doctorat d'État, Paris 1986.
296.1.8 Edited by Vijayajinendra Suri in Niryuktisaṅgraha.(Santipura, Saurastra 1989), pp. 455-475
296.1.9 Nalini Balbir, "Stories from the Āvaśyaka commentaries translated into English", in Phylllis Granoff (ed.), The Clever Adulteress and Other Stories: A Treasury of Jain Literature (Oakville, Ontario 1990), 17-74
296.1.9.1 Edited, with Municandra Suri's Panjika and Bhadrankarasuri's Bhadrankari, by Vikramasena. Madras 1990
296.1.10 Thomas Oberlies, Āvaśyaka-Studien (2): Glosser ausgewählten Wörter zu E. Leumann's 'Die Āvaśyaka-Erzählen'. Stuttgart 1993
296.1.11 Nalini Balbir, Āvaśyaka-Studien (1). Introduction generale et traductions. Two volumes. Stuttgart 1993
296.1.11.5 Edited and translated into Gujarati, with Maladhāri Hemacandra"s Pradeśavyākhyā. Ahmedabad 1996. Two volumes.
296.1.15 Klaus Bruhn, "Bibliography of studies connected with the Avasyaka-commentaries", Catalogue of the Papers of Ernst Leumann in the Institute for the Culture and History of India and Tibet, University of Hamburg (cp. Birte Plutat). (Stuttgart 1998), 119-136
2.Ācārāṅganiryukti
296.2.1 Edited, with commentaries of Silanka, Jinahamsa Suri and Parsvacandra Suri, by Bhagavan Vijayasadhu. Calcutta 1879
296.2.2 Edited with Sīlaṅka's Vivṛti. Mahesana 1916
296.2.3 Edited witih Sīlaṅka's Ṭīkā. Gopipura, Surat 1935
296.2.4 J. N. Sharma, A Critical Study of (the) Ācaraṅga based on its Niryukti, Cūrṇī and Ṭīkā. Thesis, Bihrar University. Muzaffarpur 1974
296.2.5 Edited with Jinadāsa Gaṇi's Cūrṇī by Muni Punyavijaya. Ahmedabad 1975
296.2.6 Edited and translated into German by Willem B. Bollee. Two volumes. Wiesbaden 1977-1988
296.2.7 Edited with Koṭyācārya's Ṭīkā by Jambuvijaya, Sagarananda Suri and (Punyavijaya Maharaja) Dharmacandravijaya. Delhi 1978
296.2.8 Edited with Sīlaṅka's Vṛtti. Tripathi 1981
296.2.8.1 Bansidhar Bhatt, "Ācāra-cūlas and -niryukti Studies I", ITaur 14, 1987-88, 95-116
296.2.9 Edited by Vijayajinendra Suri in Niryuktisaṅgraha (Santipura, Saurastra 1989).
296.2.10 Willem B. Bollee, The Nijuttis on the Seniors of the Śvetāmbara Siddhānta: Ācāranga, Dasaveyāliya, Uttarajhayā and Sūyagaḍa: text and selection glossary. Beitrage zur Sudasienforschung Sudasien-Institute Universitat Heidelberg 169, 1995
296.2.11 Edited by Samani Kusumaprajna in Niryuktipaṇcaka. (Ladnum 1999)
3.Daśavaikālikaniryukti
See b296.2.10
296.3.1 Ernst Leumann, "Daśavaikālikasūtra und -niryukti auf ihren Erzählungsgehalt untersucht und herausgegeben", ZDMG 46, 1892, 581-663
296.3.2 A. M. Ghatage, "The Daśavaikālika-Niryukti", IHQ 11, 1935, 627-639
296.3.3 Edited by Kashinath Vasudev Abhyankar. Ahmedabad 1932
296.3.3.1 Edited with Agastya's Cūrṇī by Punyavijaya Muni. Varanasi 1973
296.3.4 Edited with Jinadāsagaṅi's Cūrṇī by Anandasagara. Ratlam 1989
296.3.5 Edited by Vijayajinendra Suri in Niryuktisaṅgraha.(Santipura, Saurastra 1989), 328-364
296.3.6 Edited by Samani Kusumaprajna in Niryuktipaṇcaka. (Ladnum 1999)
4.Sūtrakṛtāṅganiryukti
See b296.2.10
296.4.1 Edited with Sīlaṅka's Ṭīkā. AgSS 18, 1917, 1978
296.4.1.1 Edited by Parasurama Lakshmana Vaidya. SBJ 2, Poona 1928
296.4.2 Edited with Sīlaṅka's Ṭīkā by Muni Manaka. Ahmedabad 1922-1932
296.4.3 Edited with Sīlaṅka's Ṭīkā by Ambikadatta Ojhe. Four volumes. Rajkot 1936-40
296.4.4 Edited by P. L. Vaidya. Poona 1928
296.4.5 Amrit Madhav Ghatage, "The Sutrakṛtāṅga Niryukti", IHQ 12, 1936, 270-281
296.4.6 Edited with Jinadāsa's Cūrṇī by Mohanlal M. Badami. Ratlam 1941
296.4.7 Edited with Sīlaṅka's Ṭīkā by Candrasagara Suri. Two volumes. Bombay 1950-53
296.4.8 Edited with Sādhuraṅ(ga)gani Dīpikā by Buddhisagara Gani. Surat 1959, 1962
296.4.9 Edited by Vijayajinendra Suri in Niryuktisaṅgraha.(Santipura, Saurastra 1989), 455-475
296.4.10 Edited by Samani Kusumaprajna in Niryuktipaṇcaka. (Ladnum 1999)
5.Uttarādhyānaniryukti
See b296.2.10
296.5.1 Edited with Śāntyācārya (Vādivetāla's) Śiśyahita by Anandasagara. Two parts. Bombay 1915-18; Surat 1950
296.5.2 Edited by Vijayajinendra Suri in Niryuktisaṃgraha (Santipura, Saurashtra, 1989), 365-419
296.5.3 Edited with Bhāvavijaya's Vṛtti by Vijayendra Suri. Santipur, Saurashtra 1993
296.5.4 Edited by Samani Kusumaprajna in Niryuktipaṇcaka. (Ladnum 1999)
297.Bhartṛprapañca (550)
1.General
297.1.1 Mysore Hiriyanna, "Fragments of Bhartṛprapañca", PAIOC 3, 1924, 439-450. Reprinted IPS 2, 6-16
297.1.2 Mysore Hiriyanna, "Bhartṛprapañca: an old Vedāntin", IA 53, 1924, 77-86. Reprinted in IPS 1, 79-94
297.1.3 Satyadeva Misra, "Bhartṛprapañca--a Vedāntin of pre-Śaṃkara era". JOR 40-41, 1970-72, 125-134. Also TVOS 25.1-2, 2000, 126-136
297.1.4 Selections translated in HTR 252-259
297.1.5 Arvind Sharma, "Some differences in the jñānakarmasamuccaya approach of Bhartṛprapañca and Bhāskara", JOI 31, 1981, 113-116
297.1.6 Sharada Gadgil, "Bhartṛprapañca and Śaṃkara on the conception of ultimate reality" (summary). PAIOC 32, 1984-85, 343
297.1.7 Shoun Hino, "Sureśvara's criticism of Bhartṛprapañca's view of liberation", AligarhJOS 1, 1984, 137-148
298.Candramati or Maticandra or Prajñācandra (550)
1.Daśapadārthaśāstra (Vaiśeṣika) (NCat VI, 363)
298.1.1 Hakuju Ui, Vaiśeṣika Philosophy according to the Daśapadārthaśāstra. Chinese text, English translation and notes. London 1917; ChSSt 22, Banaras 1962
298.1.2 Erich Frauwallner, "Candramati und sein Daśapadārthaśāstram", BonnOS n.s. 3, 1955, 65-86
298.1.3 Restored into Sanskrit by Karunesha Shukla. JGJRI 19, 1963-63 - 20, 1963-65
298.1.4 Summarized by Masaaki Hattori. EnIndPh2, 1977, 275-281
298.1.5 Edited and translated in Keiichi Miyamoto, The Metaphysics and Epistemology of Early Vaiśeṣikas. Bhandarkar Oriental Series 28. Pune 1996
298.1.6 S. Sankaranarayanan, "Daśapadārthī of Candramati--a study", ALB 60, 1996, 199-218
298.1.9 Discussed by Anantalal Thakur in ODVS 169-170
299.Siddhasena Divākara (550)
1.(Aṣṭadaśanī)Dvātriṃśikā (Jain)(NCat I, 467; IX,l90)
299.1.1 Edited, with Siddhasena Mahāmati's Nyāyāvatāra and Sanmatitarka, by Anandasagara. Bhavnagar 1908
299.1.2 Edited by Sukhlalji Sanghvi. Bharatiyavidya Granthavali Granthaloka 7, Ahmedabad 1932; Bombay 1945;
299.1.3 Edited, with editor's Kiraṇāvali, by Lavanyasuri. Botad (Saurashtra) 1951-55
299.1.3.1 Edited Madras 1956
299.1.4 A.N.Upadhye (ed.), Siddhasena's Nyāyāvatāra and Other Works (Bombay 1971). Includes edition of Dvātriṃśikā by M.Desai, edition and translation of Siddhasena's Sanmatitarka with Vinaya Vijaya's Nayakarṇikā by Desai, edition, with Siddharsigani's Vivrti, and translation of Nyāyāvatāra by Satischandra Vidyabhusana and introductory essay "Siddhasena and his works" by Upadhye.
299.1.5 Edited by Vijayalavanyasuri. Bhotad 1977
299.1.5.3 Edited and translated into Gujarati by Muni Bhuvanacandra. Gandhiodhama-Kaccha 2002
299.1.5.5 Discussed by Anantalal Thakur, ODVS 427-428
299.1.5.7 Ram Kumar Ratnam and P. Vari Prasada Murthy Panchadas, "Buddhasantāna Dvātriṃśikā of Siddhasena Divākara ©. A.D.400-444)", Prasadam 204-245
299.1.6 Summarized by P.N.Dave. EnIndPh10, 2007, 177-191
4.Sanmatitarka
See a374.3:21, 21.5. e374.1.1. et374.1.4
299.4.1 Partially edited, with Abhayadevasūri's Vādamahārṇava and editor's commentary, by Viracandra Dipacandra. YJG 13, 1910-17
299.4.2 Edited, with Abhayadevasūri's Vādamahārṇava, by Sukhlalji Sanghvi and Bechardas Doshi. Five volumes. Ahmedabad 1921-31. Two volumes, Kyoto 1984
299.4.3 Gujarati translation by Sukhlalji Sanghvi and Bechardas Joshi of Allahabad 1932 translated into English by A.B.Athalye and A.S.Gopani, Banaras 1939. Section of this reprinted in Source Book 268-271. Also reprinted in two volumes, Kyoto 1984
299.4.4 Edited with editor Vijayadarśana Sūri's Mahārṇāvatārikā. Madras 1956
299.4.5 Edited by Devendra Kumar Sastri as Sammai Suttam. Neemuch (M.P.) 1978; New Delhi 2003
299.4.6 Edited Kyoto 1984. Two volumes
299.4.6.5 Edited, with Abhayadeva Sūri's Tattvabodhavidhāyinī, by Jayasundara Vijaya. Dholaka, Gujarat 1986
299.4.7 Edited with Abhayadeva Sūri's Vyākhyā and Jayasundaravijaya's commentary. Two volumes. Ahmedabad 1985-86
299.4.8 Summarized by K.H.Potter. EnIndPh10, 2007, 191-201
5.(Vādi) Gajagandhahastimahābhāṣya on Umāsvāti's Tattvārthasūtra (NCat VIII,80)
6.General
299.6.0 Charlotte Krause, "Siddhasena Divākara and Vikramāditya" in Vikrama Volume (ed. Radha Kumad Mookerjee), Ujjain 1948, 213-280
299.6.1 M.A.Dhaky, "Some less known verses of Siddhasena Divākara", Sambodhi 10, 1981-82, 169-173
299.6.2 Phyllis Granoff, "The biographies of Siddhasena: a study in the texture of allusion and the weaving of a group image", JIP 17, 1989, 329-384
299.6.3 Sin Fujinaga, "Distinguishing the two Siddhasenas", JIBSt 43.1, 1999, 1-6
300.Śaṃkarasvāmin (555)
1.Nyāyapraveśa
300.1.1 Satischandra Vidyabhusana, "Nyāyapraveśa", JASBe n.s. 3, 1907, 609-617
300.1.2 A.B.Dhruva, "The Nyāyapraveśa of Diṅnāga", PAIOC 3, Summaries 1924, 4
300.1.3 M.Tubianski, "On the authorship of Nyāyapraveśa", BASR 1926, 975-982
300.1.4 Edited in Tibetan by Vidhusekhara Bhattacharya and in Sanskrit by A.B.Dhruva, with the commentaries of Haribhadra Sūri and Pārśvadeva. Two volumes. GOS 38-39, 1927-1930, 1968. Reprinted Delhi 1987
300.1.5 Vidhusekhara Bhattacharya, "Nyāyapraveśa of Dignāga", IHQ 3, 1927, 152-160
300.1.6 N.D.Mironov, "Dignāga's Nyāyapraveśa and Haribhadra's commentary on it", AIK 37-46
300.1.7 Giuseppe Tucci, "Is the Nyāyapraveśa by Dignāga?", JRAS 1928, 7-14. Reprinted GTOM 169-174
300.1.8 Giuseppe Tucci, "Notes on the Nyāyapraveśa by Śaṃkarasvāmin", JRAS 1931, 381-413. Reprinted in GTOM 277-304
300.1.9 Giuseppe Tucci, "Śaṃkarasvāmin, Śivasvāmin and Gopadatta", FMW 243-246. Reprinted in GTOM 277-304
300.1.10 Chapter One edited in Tibetan and Chinese and reconstructed into Sanskrit by N.D.Mironov. TP 28, 1931, 1-25
300.1.10.0 R.S.Y.Chi, Buddhist Syllogistic and its Relation to Modern Formal Logic: A Study mainly based on K'uei-chi's commentary on the Nyayāpraveśa. Ph.D.Thesis, King's College, U. of Cambridge 1964
300.1.10.1 Edited in Sanskrit and Tibetan by D.L.Tsulthim. Varanasi 1968
300.1.11 Richard S.Y. Chi, Buddhist Formal Logic. London 1969
300.1.12 Translated by Musashi Tachikawa, "A Sixth Century Manual of Indian Logic", JIP 1, 1970-71, 111-145
300.1.12.1 Douglas Dunsmore Daye, Metalogical Studies in Sixth-Century Buddhist Proto-Metalogic from the Sanskrit and Chinese Text of the Nyāyapraveśa; or Unpacking Ordinary Sanskrit. Ph.D.Thesis, University of Wisconsin at Madison 1972; Ann Arbor 1978
300.1.13 Douglas D. Daye, "Remarks on early Buddhist protoformalism (logic) and Mr. Tachikawa's translation of the Nyāyapraveśa", JIP 3, 1975, 383-398
300.1.14 Brendan S. Gillon and Martha Lila Love, "Indian logic revisited: Nyāyapraveśa reviewed", JIP 8, 1980, 349-384. Reprinted IPACR 2, 65-100
300.1.15 R.Lance Factor, "What is the 'logic' in Buddhist logic?", PEW 33, 1983, 183-188
300.1.15.1 Edited with Haribhadra's Vrtti by Sempa Dorje. Varanasi 1983
300.1.16 Douglas Dunsmore Daye, "Metalogical remarks on the procrustean translation of the Buddhist parārthānumāna into the Anglo-European predicate calculus", BLE 117-132
300.1.16.1 Walter Slaje, "Miscellanea zu den Wiener Sanskrithandschriften. 1. Nyayapravesa and Bilvamangalastava", WZKS 29, 1985, 151-154
300.1.17 Douglas D. Daye, "On translating the term dṛṣṭānta into early Buddhist formal logic", PEW 38, 1988, 147-156
300.1.18 Edited, with Haribhadra's Vrtti and Sricandrasuri's Panjika, by Rajan Kumar Sharma. Sarnath 1999
300.1.19 Summarized by Douglas D. Daye, Musashi Tachikawa and K.H.Potter. EnIndPh9, 2003, 468-470
300.1.21 Gunapala P. Malalasekara, Encyclopedia of Buddhism 7.1 Mind-Nyāyapraveśa. Colombo 2003
300.1.25 Edited by Jambuvijaya. Pramanakirti 395-406
301.(Ārya) Vimuktisena (555)
1.Vṛtti on Asaṅga's Abhisamayālaṃkāra (NCat I, 313-314)
See t174.3.46
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 470-471
301.1.1 Corrado Pensa, L'Abhisamayālaṃkāravṛtti di Ārya-Vimuktisena. Primo Abhisamaya. Texto e note critiche. SOR 37, 1967
301.1.2 David Seyfort Ruegg, "Ārya and Bhadanta Vimuktisena on the gotra-theory of the Prajñāpāramitā", WZKSOA 12-13, 1968-69, 303-318
301.1.3 Hirofumi Isada, "Ārya Vimuktisena's Abhisamayālaṃkāravṛtti" (in Japanese with English summary). Bunka 39.1.2, 1975, 158-184
302.Dharmapāla (560) (NCat IX, 253)
See a175.23C.1
1.Commentary on Dignāga's Ālambanaparīkśā (NCat II, 182; IX, 253)
See e175.18.9. et268.2:5,10. t268.2:1,2
302.1.1 Translated into German by M. Schott in Sein als Bewusstsein. MKB 20, 1935
302.1.2 Summarized by K.H.Potter. EnIndPh9, 2003, 471-474
2.Vṛtti on Āryadeva's Catuḥśataka (NCat IX, 253)
See b50.2.16.1. d50.2.15.1. e50.2.15
302.2.1 Summarized by K.H.Potter. EnIndPh9, 2003, 474-479
3.Vṛtti on Āryadeva's Śataśāstra (NCat IX, 253)
302.3.1 Summarized by K.H.Potter. EnIndPh9, 2003, 479-486
4.Vijñaptimātratāsiddhi on Vasubandhu's (Viṃśatikā and Triṃśikā (NCat VIII, 230; IX, 253)
See e175.18:9, 175.18.27.2. t135.1.4. t175.18.2.Cf. also EnIndPh9, 2003, 486
302.4.1 Chapter One translated by Wong Mow-Lan. Chinese Buddhist 2, 1932, 1-57
302.4.2 Sanskrit restoration of Yuan Chwang's Vijñaptimātratāsiddhiśāstra by Rahula Sankrtyayana. JBRS 19, Appendix, 1933-34
302.4.3 Megumu Honda, "Dharmapāla's report on Sāṃkhya", JIBSt 33, 1968, 439-445
302.4.3.5 Prabal Kumar Sen, "A recent translation of Vijñaptimātrātāsiddhi", JDPaliUC 2, 1984-85, 67-80
302.4.4 Iso Kern, "Object, objective phenomenon and objectivating act according to the Vijñaptimātratāsiddhi of Xuanzang (600-664)", PhIP 262-269
302.4.7 Charles Muller, Buddhist Pehnomenology: a Philosophical Investigation of Yogācāra Buddhism and the Ch'eng Wei-Shih Lun. London 2002
302.4.6 Tao Jian, "Ālayavijñāna and the problematic of continuity in the Cheng Weishi Lun", JIP 33, 2005, 243-284
302.4.8 Lambert Schmithausen, On the Problem of the External World in the Ch'eng wei shih lun.Studia Philologica Buddhica Occasional Papers Series 13. Tokyo 2005
4A.Commentary on the Nettiprakarana
302.4A.1 Extracts edited by Edmund Hardy. London 1961
5.General
See b50.6.10; 294.5.15.5. a294.5:2,6
302.5.1 N. Aiyaswami Sastri, "On Dharmapāla", JSVRI 2, 1941, 347 ff.
302.5.5 Toru Funayama, "Two notes on Dharmapāla and Dharmakīrti", Zinbun 35, 2000, 1-12
302A.Paramārtha (560)
1.Aṣṭadaśaśūnyatāsattva on Asaṅga's Madhyāntavibhāga
302A.1.1. K. Tamure, "Aṣṭadaśaśūnyatāsattva", EnBud 2.2, 1967, 236
1A.Commentary on Vasubandhu's Triṃśikā
302A.1A.1 Summarized by Diana Paul in 302A.2.1 (below), 121-130. Selections in EnIndPh9, 2003, 486-490
2.General
See a200.1.6; 423.1.5
302A.2.1 Diana Paul, "An introductory note to Paramārtha's theory of language", JIP 4, 1976, 231-255
302A.2.2 Diana Paul, "The structure of consciousness in Paramārtha's purported trilogy", PEW 31, 1981, 297-320
302A.2.3 Diana Paul, "The life and times of Paramārtha (499-569)", JIABS 5.1, 1982, 37-69
302A.2.3.1 Diana Paul, Philosophy of Mind in Sixth-Century China: Paramārtha's 'Evolution of Consciousness'. Stanford, Calif. 1984
302A.2.4 Swati Ganguly, "Paramārtha and Hsuan Tsang on the Tathāgatagarbha and the ālayavijñā causation: a perspective of the Buddhist idealism in China", JDBSDU 8.2, 1984, 7-12
302A.2.5 Sallie B. King, "Buddha nature and the concept of a person", PEW 39, 1989, 151-170
302A.2.6 Robert K. C. Forman, "Paramārtha and modern constructivists on mysticism: epistemological monomorphism versus duo-morphism", PEW 39, 1989, 393-418
302A.2.8 Daniel Boucher, "Paramārtha", EnB 2, 2004, 630-631
304.Sthiramati (560)
1.Tattvārthaṭīkā on Vasubandhu's Abhidharmakośa (NCat I, 290)
304.1.1 Uigur translation edited by Sinasi Tekin. New York 1970
304.1.2 Masahiro Shogaito, "On the contents of the Uighur version of the Abhidharmakośabhāṣya Tattvārtha" in Turfan, Khotan und Dunhuang (ed. Ronald E. Emmerick, Weimer Sundermann, Ingrid Warnke and Peter Zieme) (Berlin 1996)
304.1.3 Summaried by Robert E. Buswell Jr. in EnIndPh9, 2003, 491-495
304.1.4 Masaru Akimoto, "Abhidharmakośabh1a1sya commentary of Sthiramati–On the reality of the past, present and future", Bulletin of the International Cultural Research Institute of Chikashi Jogakan College 4, p. 54
2.Commentary on Asaṅga's Abhidharmasaṃgītiśāstra (Sanskrit ms.in Ngor, according to Warder, 543)
3.Bhāṣya on Asaṅga's Abhidharmasamuccaya (NCat I, 292)
304.3.1 Prahlad Pradhan, "A note on Abhidharmasamuccaya Bhāṣya and its author Sthiramati(?)", JBRS 35.1-2, 1950, 34 ff.
304.3.2 Edited by Nathmal Tatia. TSWS 17, 1976
304.3.2.5 Robert Kritzer, "On the 'additional leaf' in the Abhidharmasamuccaya manuscript", JIBSt 50.1, 2002, 32-35
304.3.2.6 R. Kritzer, "The 'additional leaf' of the Abhidharmasamuccayabhāṣya manuscript: the result of the ten bad courses of action", JA 290.2, 2002, 417-464
304.3.3 Summaried by Paul Griffiths. EnIndPh9, 2003, 495-510
4.Commentary on Nāgārjuna's Madhyamakakārikās (available in Chinese)
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 510
5.Ṭīkā on Vasubandhu's Madhyantavibhāgasūtrabhāṣya
See et174.6.2. e174.6:7,10. t174.6.4
304.5.1 Edited by Susumu Yamaguchi. OG 11, 1929 - 13, 1931
304.5.2 Partially edited by Vidhusekhara Bhattacharya and Giuseppe Tucci. COS 24, 1932
304.5.3 Edited by Sylvain Levi. Nagoya 1934
304.5.4 Book One translated by David L. Friedman. Utrecht 1937
304.5.5 Extracts edited by Chandradhara Sharma in JP 2, 1963 and Madhya Bharati 2, 1963. Reprinted Jabalpur 1963
304.5.6 Summaried by K.H.Potter. EnIndPh9, 200-3, 510-513
6.Mahāyānadharmadhavaviśeṣatāśāstra (available in Chinese)
7.Ṭīkā on Asaṅga's Mahāyānasūtrālaṃkāra
See a274.3.2.Cf. also EnIndPh9, 2003, 514
8.Tika on the Kasyapaparivarta (Vijñānavāda)
304.8.1 Edited in Tibetan and Chinese by A. von Stael-Holstein, A Commentary to the Kāśyapaparivarta. Peking 1933
304.8.2 Leslie Kawamura, "The middle path according to the Kāsyapaparivartasutra", WCSU 221-232
304.8.3 Summaried by Jikido Takasaki. EnIndPh9, 2003, 526-532
9.Vaibhāṣya on Vasubandhu's Pañcaskandhaprakaraṇa or -Vibhāṣā
See et175.11.1
304.9.1 Summaried by Ronald Davidson. EnIndPh9, 2003, 514-523
304.9.5 Jowita Kramer, "On Sthiramati's Pañcaskandhavibhāṣā: a preliminary survey", Sambhasa 27, 2008, 149-172
10.Bhāṣya on Vasubandhu's Triṃśikā
See a221.1.215. et175.18.18. e175.18:1,8-10,15,17, 27.1. t175.18.5
304.10.1 Hakuju Ui, "Commentaries by Sthiramati and Dharmapāla on Vasubandhu's Triṃśikā-vijñaptimātra" (summary). JSR 5, 1954, 58-62
304.10.2 V.V.Gokhale, "Fragments of Sthiramati's Triṃśikāvijñaptibhāṣya in the Patna collection of Tibetan materials", JUP 27, 1968, 175-179
304.10.3 Summarized by K.H.Potter in EnIndPh9, 2003, 523-525
304.10.5 Kazuo Kano, "Two folios from Sthiramati's Triṃśikābhāṣya in Sanskrit photographed by Rahula Sankrtyayana: diplomatic and critical editions of Gottingen Xc14/1e", WZKSOA 49, 2005, 113-150
11.Bhāṣya on Vasubandhu's Viṃśatikā
See e175.18:10,17,21. See also EnIndPh9, 2003, 525
12.General
See a175.24.17. a294.5.6
304.12.1 K.Kunjunni Raja, "Transfer of meaning--a Buddhist view", ALB 20, 1956, 345-348
304.12.2 Noriaki Hakamaya, "Sthiramati and Śīlabhadra", JIBSt 25.l, 1976, 36-37
304.12.2.1 Cuong Tu Nguyen, Sthiramati's Interpretation of Buddhology and Soteriology. Ph.d.Thesis, Harvard University 1990
304.12.3 Yuichi Kajiyama, "Sthiramati, Uddyotakara and Ārcaṭa on vyabhicāra", AS 46.1, 1992, 212-221
304A.Vasumitra (560)
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 490-491
304B.Author Unknown (565)
1.Sūtra on the original cause of raising the world
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 532
305.Bhāvivikta (570)
1.General
305.1.1 See IndP 2, 1977: 281, 337
307.Ānanda (570) (NCat I, 289; II, 113-114)
1. Mūlaṭīkā on Buddhaghoṣa's Aṭṭhasālinī (NCat I,289; IX, 235)
307.1.1 Edited in Burmese characters. Rangoon 1910
307.1.2 Edited in Burmese characters by Hsaya Kyi et al. Rangoon 1915
2.Mūlaṭīkā on Dhammasaṅganī (NCat I, 289; IX, 235)
307.2.1 Edited, with Culla Dhammapāla's Aṇuṭīkā, by U Hpye in Burmese characters. Rangoon 1908
307.2.2 Edited Burma 1924-26
307.2.3 Edited by Pannasara and Vimaladhamma. Colombo 1938
307.2.4 Edited, with Dhammapāla's Aṇuṭīkā. Burma 1958
3.Mūlaṭīkā on Dhātukathā (NCat I, 289)
307.3.1 Edited in Burmese characters, with Ānanda's commentaries on Buddhaghoṣa's Kathāvatthu, Puggalapaññati, Vibhaṅga, Yāmaka and Sammohavinodanī, by U Ngui. Three volumes. Rangoon 1910-1912
307.3.2 Edited in Burmese characters, with Ānanda's commentaries on Buddhaghoṣa's Kathāvatthu, Puggalapaññati, Vibhaṅga and Yāmaka, by Hsaya Kyi et al. Rangoon 1915
307.3.3 Edited Burma 1924-26, 1958
4.Mūlaṭīkā on Kathāvatthu (NCat I, 289)
See e307.3:1-2
5.Mūlaṭīkā on Paṭṭhāna (NCat I, 289)
307.5.1 Edited Burma 1924-26, 1958
6.Mūlaṭīkā on Puggalapaññati (NCat I, 289)
See e307.3:1-2
307.6.1 Edited Burma 1924-26, 1958
7.Mūlaṭīkā on Buddhaghoṣa's Sammohavinodanī
See e307.3.1
307.7.1 Edited in Burmese characters by Hsaya Kyi et al. Rangoon 1915
8.Mūlaṭīkā on Vibhaṅga (NCat I, 289)
See e307.3:1, 2, 5.1; e3.1.5.1
307.8.1 Edited Burma 1924-26, 1958
307.8.2 Edited with Dhammapāla's Aṇuṭīkā by Dhammapala Thera. Varanasi 1987
9.Mūlaṭīkā on Yāmaka (NCat I, 289)
See e307.3:1-2
307.9.1 Edited Burma 1924-26, 1958
308.Vimalamitra (580)
1.Abhidharma(pra)dīpa and Vibhāṣāprabhāvṛtti thereon (Sarvāstivāda)(NCat I, 291)
See a134.1.4
308.1.1 Padmanabh S. Jaini, "A rare manuscript of Abhidharmadīpavibhāṣā- Prabhā-Vṛtti", PAIOC 17, 1953, 284-289. Also Bh 1, 1956-57, 50-66
308.1.2 Edited by Padmanabh S. Jaini, TSWS 4, 1959. Includes 16 page summary
308.1.3 P.S.Jaini, "Abhidharmadīpa", EnBud 1.1, 1963, 53-57. Reprinted CPBS 260-265
308.1.4 J.W.de Jong, "L'auteur de l'Abhidharmadīpa", TP 52, 1966, 305-307
308.1.5 Tomoichi Hirose, "The criticism of the īśvara doctrine in the Abhidharmadīpa" (in Japanese with English summary). TISGR 7, 1980, 41-68
308.1.5.5 Kamaleswar Bhattahcayra, "Ontological realism and grammatical opportunities in the Abhidharmadīpa and Vibhāṣāprabhāvṛtti", BSPF 8-9, 84-76
308.1.6 Summarized by Collett Cox, SarvastiBS 249-254
308.1.7 Summaried by Pamanabh S. Jaini. EnIndPh9, 2003, 532-558
308.1.10 Ken'yo Mitumo, "Śāstras quoted in the Abhidharmadipā", JIBSt 55.3, 2007, 243-244
309.Śīlabhadra (580)
1.Buddhabhūmivyākhyāna
See b132.1.1. e132.1.2.
309.1.1 Edited in Tibetan by K. Nishio. Nagoya 1940; Tokyo 1982
309.1.1.5 J. K. Sharma, "Śīlabhadra, an eminent teacher. Administrator of Nālandā", NBWGJ 9-22
309.1.2 Summary based on b132.1.1 in EnIndPh9, 2003, 558-561
2.General
See e304.12.2
309.2.1 Puspa Niyogi, "Śīlabhadra and Śāntideva", JAIH 13, 1980-82, 169-178
309.2.5 Jayanti Chattopadhyay, "Śīlabhadra, the teacher of Hsuan-tsang at Nalanda Mahavihara", JDPUC 12, 2008, 55-57
310.Guṇaprabhā (580) (NCat VI, 49)
1.Vṛtti on Bodhisattvabhūmi section of Asaṅga's Yogācārabhūmi
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 561
310.1.1 Indumatie Karunaratne, "Bodhisattvabhūmi-Vṛtti", EnBud 3.2, 1972, 236-237
2.Vivaraṇa on Vasubandhu's Pañcaskandha(prakaraṇa)
See a175.11.5
310.2.1 Summaried by Stefan Anacker. EnIndPh9, 2003, 562-564
311.Yaśomitra (580)
1.Sphuṭārthavyākhyā on Vasubandhu's Abhidharmakośa (NCat I, 290)
See a192.3.4. et175.1.2. e175.1:11,15,35. t6.1.1.1
311.1.1 Chapter 1 edited by Sylvain Levi and Th. Stcherbatsky. BBudh 21, 1918
311.1.2 Vidhusekhara Bhattacarya, "A passage of the Abhidharmakośavyākhyā", IHQ 2, 1926, 418-420
311.1.3 Louis de la Vallee Poussin, "A passage of the Abhidharmakośavyākhyā", IHQ 2, 1926, 656-657
311.1.4 Sylvain Levi, "Abhidharmakośa Vyākhyā", ERE 1, 1926, 19-20
311.1.5 Chapter 2 edited by Unrai Wogihara, Th. Stcherbatsky and Ernst Obermiller. BBudh 21, 1931. Reprinted Osnabruck 1970; Delhi 1992
311.1.6 T.Rajapatirana, "Abhidharmakośa-Vyākhyā", EnBud 1.1, 1961, 63-64
311.1.7 Bhikkhu Pasadika, "Zu der Zitaten in Yaśomitra's Abhidharmakośa-vyākhyā", Ananda 22-31
311.1.8 Summaried by Stefan Anacker. EnIndPh9, 200-3, 565-593
2.Bhāṣya on Asaṅga's Abhidharmasamuccaya (NCat I, 292)
311.2.1 T. Rajapatirana, "Abhidharmasamuccaya-Bhāṣya", EnBud 1.1, 1961, 87
3.Vyākhyā on Asaṅga's Abhidharmasamuccaya
312.Jinabhadra Gaṇi Kṣamāramaṇa (580) (NCat VII, 262)
1.Bṛhatsaṃgrāhaṇī or Bṛhatkṣetrasamāsa (Jain) (NCat VII, 262)
312.1.1 Edited with Malayagiri's Vṛtti by Pannyasadana Vijaya Gani. JAG 47, Bhavnagar 1917
312.1.2 Edited with Malayagiri's Ṭīkā. Bombay 1920-21, 1987, 1988
312.1.3 Edited with Malayagiri's Vṛtti by Vijaya Danasurisvara. Bombay 1987
312.1.4 Edited with Malayagiri's Vṛtti by P.A.Kothari. Mahesana 2000
2.Dhyānaśataka or Jhānāśaya (Jain) (NCat VII, 262; IX, 307)
312.2.1 Edited and translated by Muni Dalaharaj. Delhi 1972. Translated reprinted in EnIndPh10, 2007, 210-224
312.2.2 Edited b Kanhaiyalal Lurha and Suchama Sanghvi. Jaipur 2007
3.Vṛtti on Bhadrabāhu's Āvaśyakalaghunirukti
4.Viśeṣāvaśyakabhāṣya on Bhadrabāhu's Āvaśyakanirukti (NCat VII,262; II, 189)
See e296.1: 1.1.5.; 1.3; 1.3.3; 1.4.1; 1.11.5
312.4.1 Laghuvrṭti edited, with Maladhāri Hemacandra's Śiṣyahita and digest by Dhrubhai P. Thaker of Ratnaprabhā Vijaya's commentary, by Haragovinda. YJG 15, 1911-1950
312.4.2 Index to gāthās. Mahsava 1923
312.4.2.1 Edited with Malladhari Hemacandra's Śisyahita. Bombay 1924-25
312.4.3 Edited, with Maladhāri Hemacandra's Śiṣyahita, by Rajendra Vijayaji Maharaj. Three volumes. Ahmedabad 1962-63. Reprinted Bombay 1982-83, 1988
312.4.3.1 Ganadharavada and Nihnavavada sections edited and translated, with Maladhari Hemacandra's Śisyahita, by Ratna Prabha Vijaya and Dhirabhai P. Thakur. Ahmedabad 1947, 1950, 1951
312.4.4 Edited with Sanskrit autocommentary by Dalsukh Malvania. Three volumes. Ahmedabad 1966-68. Summary by Dalsukh Malvania (in LDS 21) reprinted in EnIndPh10, 2007, 224-233
312.4.4.1 Gaṇadharavāda section translated, with Maladhari Hemacandra's Śiṣyahitā, by Esther A. Solomon, Gaṇadharavāda. (Ahmedabad 1966).
312.4.5 Edited by Nathmal Tatia. Vaishalli, Bihar 1972
312.4.5.1 Edited by Vijay Bhuvanabhanusuri. Delhi 1989
312.4.5.2 K. Butzenberger, Beiträge zum Problem der personalen Identität in der indischen Philosophie: die jinistischen Beweiss für die Existenz einer jīva im Viśeṣāvaśyakabhāṣya. Inaugural Dissertation, University of Munich 1989
312.4.5.3 Partly translated in Acharya Vijay Bhuvanabhanasvami, The Essential Bhagavan Mahāvīra (Delhi 1989)
312.4.6 K. R. Chandra, "Editing of ancient Ārdhamāgadhī texts in view of the text of Viśeṣāvaśyaka-Bhāṣya", Nirgrantha 1, 1995, 1-10
313.Upasena (580)
1.Saddhdammapajotikā on the Niddeśa
See e9.1:5, 8, 9
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 564
314.Īśvarasena (580)
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 593
314.1.1 Ernst Steinkellner, "Bemerkungen zu Īśvarasena's Lehre vom Grund", WZKS 10, 1966, 73-85
314A.Bhadanta Vimuktisena (590)
1.Abhisamayālaṃkāvārttika
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 593-594
314B.Author Unknown (598)
1. Devatāsūtra
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 599
313.Author Unknown *(600)*
1.Buddhabālādhānapratihāryavikūrvananirdeśa (Toh. 186)
Cf. EnIndPh9, 2003, 593
313.1.1 Summarized by Nalinaksha Dutt, GilgitM 4, xxv-xxvii
313.1.2 Edited and translated in Gregory Schopen, "The five leaves of the Buddhabālādhāna-prati-Hāryavikurvānanda-Sūtra found at Gilgit", JIP 5, 1977, 319-336
315.Author Unknown (600)
1.Raśmisamantamukhanirdeśasūtra (T.310(11); Toh. 55)
315.1.1 Translated Treasury 191-218
317.Gauḍapāda (600) (NCat VI, 219)
1.Māṇḍūkyakārikās or Gauḍapādīyakārikās or Āgamaśāstra (Advaita)
See b221.1.169.5. e379.23:1,2
317.1.1 Edited, with Śaṃkara's Bhāṣya and Ānandagiri's Ṭīkā. Calcutta 1873
317.1.2 Edited, with Śaṃkara's Bhāṣya. Calcutta 1884
317.1.3 Edited by M.N.Ghoshal. Banaras 1889
317.1.4 Edited, with Śaṃkara's Bhāṣya, Ānandagiri's Ṭīkā and Śaṃkarānanda's Dīpikā, by A.Kathavate, ASS 10, 1890, 1900, 1928, 1977
317.1.5 Edited by Yamunasamkara Nagara. Lucknow 1891
317.1.6 Translated, with Śaṃkara's Bhāṣya, by M.N.Dvivedi. Bombay 1894, 1909
317.1.7 Translated into German by Paul Deussen in Sechzig Upaniṣaden des Veda (Leipzig 1897, 1921)
317.1.8 Edited, with Śaṃkara's and Raṇga Rāmānuja's commentaries on the Īṣā, Kena, Kaṭha, Praṣna, Muṇḍaka, Māṇḍūkya, Aitareya, Bṛhadāraṇyaka, Chāndogya and Taittirīya Upaniṣads, by A. Srinivasa Tatacarya Svami. Madras 1897-98
317.1.9 Edited, with Bhāskarānanda Sarasvatī's commentary, in Upaniṣatprasāda (Banaras 1898-99)
317.1.10 Edited by Badaridatta Sarma. Meerut 1907
317.1.11 Books I and II edited by Darsananda Sarasvati. Lahore 1907, 1910
317.1.12 Edited, with Śaṃkarānanda's Dīpikā and Svayaṃprakāśānanda Sarasvatī's Mitākṣarā, by R.G.Bhatta. KSS 48, 1910, 1986
317.1.13 Edited, with Śaṃkara's Bhāṣya and Śaṃkara's commentaries on Aitareya, Bṛhadāraṇyaka, Chāndogya, Īśā, Kaṭha, Kena, Māṇḍūkya, Muṇḍaka and Praśna Upaniṣads, by Durgacarana Samkhyavedantatirtha and Anilacandra Datta. Nine volumes. Calcutta 1911-1921
317.1.14 Edited by Nathurama Sarma. Ahmedabad 1911
317.1.15 Edited, with Śaṃkara's Bhāṣya, Śaṃkara's commentaries on Īśā, Kena, Kaṭha, Praśna, Muṇḍaka, Māṇḍūkya, Aitareya, Taittirīya and Chāndogya (incomplete) Upaniṣads, Nārāyaṇa's commentary on Īṣā, Jayatīrtha's Vivaraṇa on Madhva's Īśopaniṣadbhāṣya, Raṅgarāmānuja's commentaries on Kena and Kaṭha Upaniṣads, by Chintaman Gangadhara Bhanu. Bombay 1911-1915
317.1.16 Edited, with Śaṃkara's Bhāṣya and Śaṃkara's commentaries on Īśā, Kaṭha, Kena, Māṇḍūkya, Muṇḍaka and Praśna Upaniṣads, by Durgacarana Samkhyavedantatirtha. Calcutta 1912
317.1.17 Edited with Śaṃkara's Bhāṣya by Cintamana Gangadahra Bhanu. Bombay 1913
317.1.18 Hermann Jacobi, "On māyāvāda", JAOS 33, 1913, 51-54
317.1.19 Edited by V.V.Bapat. Poona 1917
317.1.20 Vidhusekhara Bhattacarya, "The Gauḍapāda-kārikā on the Māṇḍūkya Upanishad", PAIOC 2, 1920, 439-462
317.1.21 Summarized in Dasgupta I, 424-428
317.1.22 Edited, with Puruṣottama Pītāmbara's Dīpikā. Bombay 1923
317.1.23 Vidhusekhara Bhattacarya, "The Māṇḍūkya Upaniṣad and the Gauḍapāda Kārikā", IHQ 1, 1925: 119-125, 295-302
317.1.24 Edited by Damodar Patva Senvi. Bombay 1925
317.1.25 Edited with Śaṃkara's Bhāṣya in WSS 5, 1927
317.1.26 Translated, with Śaṃkara's Bhāṣya, by M.S.Rao. VK 18, 1931-32 - 21, 1934-35
317.1.27 B.N.Krishnamurti Sarma, "New light on the Gauḍapāda kārikās", RPR 2.1, 1931 - 4.2, 1933
317.1.28 H.M.Bhattacharya, "The philosophy of Gauḍapāda", HMBSP 16-25
317.1.29 B.N.Krishnamurti Sharma, "Still further light on the Gauḍapāda-kārikās", RPR 4.2, 1933, 1-22
317.1.30 Y.Subrahmanya Sarma, "The Upaniṣadic theory of the Gauḍapāda-kārikās", RPR 4.2, 1933, 196-204
317.1.31 A.Venkata Subbiah, "The Māṇḍūkyopaniṣad and Gauḍapāda", IA 62, 1933, 181-193
317.1.32 Edited, with Śaṃkara's Bhāṣya, by Munilal Gupta. Gorakhpur 1935
317.1.33 Summarized by N.B.Purohit, "Gauḍapāda-kārikās and Buddhism", PAIOC 8, 1935, 352-382
317.1.34 Amarnath Ray, "Bhāgavata Purāṇa and the kārikās of Gauḍapāda", BSOAS 8, 1935-37, 107-112
317.1.35 A. Venkata Subbiah, "Gauḍapāda's Āgamaśāstra", IHQ 11, 1935, 783-790
317.1.36 Translated, with Śaṃkara's Bhāṣya, by Nikhilananda. Mysore 1936, 1949
317.1.37 A.Venkata Subbiah,"Are the Gauḍapāda kārikās śruti?", PO 1, 1936-37: 1, 7-18; 2, 1-12
317.1.38 B.N.Krishnamurti Sharma, "Upaniṣadic theory of Gauḍapāda's kārikās", PO 1.2, 1936-37, 27-38
317.1.39 Vidhusekhara Bhattacharya, "Āgamaśāstra of Gauḍapāda", JBHU 1.1, 1937, 3-15
317.1.40 V.A.Gadgil, "The Māṇḍūkyopaniṣad and the Gauḍapādakārikās", JUBo 6, 1937-38, 66-79
317.1.41 B.N. Krishnamurti Sharma, "Are the Gauḍapāda-kārikās śruti-a rejoinder", PO 2.1, 1937-38, 20-30
317.1.42 Vidhusekhara Bhattacharya, "Gauḍapāda", IHQ 14, 1938, 392-397. Also WMN 192-197; SHIP 3, 272-275
317.1.43 B.A.N.Roy, "The Māṇḍūkya Upaniṣad and the kārikās of Gauḍapāda", IHQ 14, 1938, 564-569. Also WMN 364-369; SHIP 3, 276-281
317.1.44 K.Venkatarama Sastri, "Absolutism of Vedānta according to Gauḍapāda", PAIOC 10, Summaries 1939; 75-76
317.1.45 S.S.Suryanarayana Sastri, "Some observations on the Māṇḍūkya Kārikās", JOR 13, 1939, 99-109. Reprinted CPSSS 262-271
317.1.46 P.C.Divanji, "Gauḍapāda's asparśayoga and Śaṃkara's jñānavāda", PO 4, 1940, 149-158
317.1.47 Prabhavananda, "The philosophy of experience", VK 27, 1940, 181-184
317.1.48 Edited and translated, with a 14 page summary, by Vidhusekhara Bhattacharya, The Āgamaśāstra of Gauḍapāda (Calcutta 1943; Delhi 1989)
317.1.49 Edited and translated into French by E. Le Simple. Paris 1944
317.1.50 T.M.P.Mahadevan, "Some problems of the Māṇḍūkya Kārikās", JMU 15, 1944, 130-146. Also PQ 20, 1944, 18-34
317.1.51 Summarized in T.M.P.Mahadevan, "The ajātivāda of Gauḍapāda", BCLV I, 308-320
317.1.52 J.L.Majumdar, "The philosophy of Gauḍapāda", IHQ 23, 1947, 1-16
317.1.53 Book 4 translated in J.L.Majumdar, "Gauḍapāda's kārikās", JGJRI 5, 1947-48 - 6, 1948-49
317.1.54 T.M.P.Mahadevan, "Place of reason and revelation in the philosophy of an early Advaitin", PICP 10.1, 1949, 247-255
317.1.55 S.S.Suryanarayana Sastri, "The relation between Māṇḍūkya Upaniṣad and the kārikās", BVK 2.2, 1950, 1-7
317.1.56 J.L.Majumdar, "Philosophy of Gauḍapāda (alāta-śānti-prakaraṇam)", JGJRI 8, 1950-51 - 9, 1951-52
317.1.57 R.D.Karmarkar, "'Dvipadaṃ vare' in Gauḍapādakārikā (IV.1)", ABORI 32, 1951, 130-145
317.1.58 T.M.P.Mahadevan, Gauḍapāda: A Study in Early Advaita. Madras 1952
317.1.59 Edited and translated, with 12 page summary, by R.D. Karmarkar. GOSBORI B9, 1953
317.1.60 R.D.Karmarkar, "Yogavāśiṣṭha, Laṅkāvatāra and Gauḍapādakārikā--mutual relation", PAIOC 17, Summaries 1953, 124-125
317.1.61 B.N.Krishnamurti Sharma, "The problem of the Upanishadic theory of the Āgamaprakaraṇa of Gauḍapāda", BhV 17.3-4, 1957, 96-121
317.1.62 Edited by Bhadanta Ananda Kosalyayan. Calcutta 1957
317.1.63 A.D.Shastri, "Gauḍapāda-kārikā IV.1--an interpretation", BCGV 2, 1958, 51-53
317.1.64 S.N.Bhattacharya, "Gauḍapāda on māyā and avidyā", PB 65, 1960, 210-212
317.1.65 Govinda Chandra Dev, "Notion of falsity of the world in Gauḍapāda and Śaṃkara", JASP 5, 1960, 148-163
317.1.66 Translated in Chinmayananda. Discourses on Māṇḍūkya Upaniṣad with Gauḍapāda's Kārikās. Madras 1966
317.1.67 Edited and translated. Gorakhpur 1967
317.1.68 A.G.Krishna Warrier, "Gauḍapāda and Śaṃkara (a study in contrast)", ABORI 48-49, 1968, 179-186
317.1.68.5 S. S. Ray, "Advaita Vedānta and Buddhist absoltism", VandB 41-62
317.1.69 L.M.Joshi, "Gauḍapāda's rapprochement between Buddhism and Vedānta", Rtam 1.1, 1969, 179-186
317.1.70 Caterina Conio, The Philosophy of Māṇḍūkyakārikās. Varanasi 1971
317.1.71 Portions translated by Eliot Deutsch in SBAV 120-121
317.1.72 N.Aiyasvami Sastri, "A new approach to Gauḍapāda", Bulletin of Tibetology 8.1, 1971, 15-46
317.1.73 Edited, with Śaṃkara's Bhāṣya and Ānandagiri's Ṭīkā, by Vishnudevananda Giri. Varanasi 1972
317.1.73.0 Translated, with Samkara's Atmabodha, by Sulman Samuel Cohen as Advaitic Sadhana, or The Yoga of Direct Liberation. Delhi 1975
317.1.73.01 Colin A. Cole, The Soteriology of Gauḍapāda's Māṇḍūkyakarikā. M.A.Thesis, U. of British Colmbia, 1975. Canadian thesis on microfiche no. 25118
317.1.73.1 Alexander Paul Hixon, Mahāyāna Buddhist Influence on the Gauḍa School of Advaita Vedānta: An Analysis of the Gauḍapādakārikās. Ph.D.Thesis, Columbia University 1976
317.1.74 Selections translated in HTR 190-196
317.1.74.1 Edited, with Śaṃkara's and Anubhūti Svarupācārya's commentaries, by S.R.Krishnamurti Sastri and P.V. Sivarama Dikshitar. Madras 1978
317.1.75 S.S.Deshpande, "A conceptual layout of Gauḍapādakārikās", IPQ 6, 1978-79, 281-288
317.1.76 Karl H. Potter, "Was Gauḍapāda an idealist?", SISDI 183-200
317.1.77 Christian Bouy, Gauḍapāda. Āgamaśāstra text transcrit, traduction et notes, accompagnes d'une introduction, d'une bibliographie et d'un index des mots et expressions du texte. Doctorat, Paris-Sorbonne, 1981
317.1.78 Summarized by Karl H. Potter in EnIndPh3, 1981, 105-114
317.1.79 Colin A. Cole, Asparśa-Yoga. A Study of Gauḍapāda's Māṇḍūkyakārikā. Delhi 1982
317.1.79.1 Kazi Nurul Islam, "Influence of Buddhism on Gauḍapāda:a critical estimate", JASP 27.2, 1982, 113-125
317.1.80 Esho Kanakura, "Indian Buddhism and Indian philosophy: an essay on Gauḍapāda" (in Japanese with English summary). HNBTK 369-394
317.1.81 T.M.P.Mahadevan, "Gauḍapāda and non-origination", MP 19, 1982, 49-52, 115-120
317.1.81.1 Kazi Nurul Islam, "Gauḍapāda and Śaṃkara on the nature of dream and waking experience", JASP 28.1, 1983, 16-21
317.1.82 Stephen Kaplan, "A critique of an ontological approach to Gauḍapāda's Māṇḍūkyakārikās", JIP 11, 1983, 339-355
317.1.83 Edited and expounded by Karunesa Shukla. Gorakhpur 1983
317.1.84 Linda Kay Barabas Mackey, Reflections on Advaita Vedānta: The Approach of Gauḍapāda's Kārikā on the Māṇḍūkya Upanishad with Śaṃkara's Commentary. Ph.D.Thesis, University of Texas 1983.
317.1.84.1 S. M. Shah, "The theory of two-fold truth according to Gauḍapāda and Kundakunda", CASSt 5, 1986, 41-48
317.1.84.2 Douglas A. Fox, "The Gauḍapāda riddle", AJOS 6, 1989, 101-114
317.1.85 Stephen Kaplan, Hermeneutics, Holography and Indian Idealism. A Study of Projection and Gauḍapāda's Māṇḍūkya Kārikā. Delhi 1987.
317.1.85.0 Edited and translated by Gambhirananda. Trichur, Kerala 1987
317.1.85.1 Thirteen Principal Upaniṣads. Volume II. Māṇḍūkya Upaniṣad with Gauḍapādakārikās and Śaṃkara's Bhāṣyas on both. Edited and translated by Jayant Krishna Dave. Bombay 1990
317.1.86 Richard King, "Asparśa-Yoga meditation and epistemology in the Gauḍapādīyakārikā", JIP 20, 1992, 99-132
317.1.87 Book 4 translated by Douglas A. Fox in Alātaśānti. Albany, N.Y., 1992
317.1.87.1.Hajime Nakamura, "Buddhist influences as is noticed in the 4th chapter of the Gaudapādīya-kārikās", PGI 241-258
317.1.88 Ranjan Umapathy, "The Māṇḍūkya Upaniṣad and kārikās: the Advaitic approach", IndPQ 20, 1993, 243-264
317.1.88.1 S. Sobhana, "Glimpses of Māṇḍūkyakārikā of Gauḍapāda", VIJ 31, 1993-94, 129-138
317.1.89 Walter Slaje, "Die angst yogis vor der Versenkung", WZKSOA 38, 1994, 273-291
317.1.89.1 Bina Gupta, "Śaṃkara's notion of sākṣin: its anticipation in Upanisads and Gauḍapāda", IndPQ 22, 1995, 291-312
317.1.90 Richard King, "Early Advaita Vedānta: the date and authorship of the Gauḍapādīyakārikā", IIJ 38, 1995, 317-355
317.1.91 Richard King, Early Advaita Vedānta and Buddhism: the Mahāyāna Context of the Gauḍapādīya-Kārikā. Albany, N.Y. 1995
317.1.92 Stephen Kaplan, "Culture, genome and the Māṇḍukyakārikārikās. Philosophical inconsistency, historical uncertainty or textual discontinuity?", AsPOxford 6.2, 1996, 129-146
317.1.93 Christian Bouy, "La Māṇdūkya-Upaniṣad et l'Āgamaśāstra. Concordance esternes et citations", WZKSOA 41, 1997, 119-158
317.1.94 Douglas A. Fox, Dispellling Illusion: Gauḍapāda's Ālātaśānti. Delhi 1997
317.1.94.5 N. M. Kansara, "The Gaudapāda-kārikā and Suddhadvaita", JOI 47, 1997, 227-236
317.1.95 Edited, with Śaṃkara's Bhāṣya, Anandagiri's Bhasya, Viṣṇudevānandagiri's Govindaprasādinī and Vidyānanda Giri's Mitākṣara, by Umesananda Sastri. Rshikesh 1998
317.1.96 Richard King, "Early Advaita and Madhyamaka Buddhism: the case of the Gauḍapādakārikā", IJHS 2.1, 1998, 67-84
317.1.97 P.K.Sundaram, "Gauḍapāda and Buddhism", ALB 62, 1998, 95-98
317.1.100 G. Mishra, "Advaita--a reconciliation and reconstruction (An analysis of Upaniṣadic and Buddhist concepts vis-a-vis Gauḍapāda and Śaṃkara)", JICPR 17.1, 1999, 99-112
317.1.102 Edited and translated into French by Christian Bouy. PICI 69, Paris 2000
317.1.103 Byungmoo Lee, The role of Gauḍapāda's ajātivāda in early Advaita Vedāntist attempts to resolve the satkāryavāda-monism contradictions. S.T.M. Thesis, Boston U. 2000
317.1.107 Alberta Palissena, Strumenti per lo studio dell'Āgamaśāstravivaraṇa. Torino 2002
317.1.109 N. Jayashanmugam, "Māṇḍūkya or Catuṣpādātmā Siddhi", ABORI 83, 2003, 121-138
317.1.113 Srinivasa Rao, "The paradigm of metaphysics of experience: a study of Gauḍapāda's Māṇḍūkya-kārikā", PappuSV 3-11
2.Śrī Vidyā Sūtras (NCat VI, 219)
317.2.86.1 Edited, with Śaṃkarāraṇya's Dīpikā by Narayana Sastri Khiste. POWSBT 11, 1924
317.2.86.2 R.A.Sastri, "Gauḍapāda and his Devī Sūtras", Theosophist 18:298, 345
3.General
See a23.1.128; 47.16:75,134; 196A.7.10.1; 175.24.36. b47.16.119; 221.1.169.5
317.3.1 L.M.Joshi, "Gauḍapāda", EnBud 5, 1991, 314-318
317.3.2 Michael Comans, The Method of Early Advaita Vedānta (A Study of Gauḍapāda, Śaṃkara, Sureśvara and Padmapāda). Delhi 2000
318.Viśvarūpadeva (600)
1.Vivekamārtaṇḍa (Vedānta)
318.1.1 Edited by K. Sambasiva Sastri. TSS 119, 1935
318.1.2 Edited by Sivagoraksa Mahayogi Goraksanatha. Gorakhpur 1983
319.Siṃhāsuragaṇi (600)
1.Nyāyāgamānusāriṇī on Mallavādin's Nayacakra
See e293.1:1,3,5,7. a293.1.2
319.1.1 Cf. EnIndPh10, 2007, 233
320.Prīticandra (600)
1.General
320.1.1 Cf. EnIndPh2, 1977, 338
321.Candrakīrti (600) (NCat VI, 346-347)
1.Vṛtti on Āryadeva's Catuḥśataka (NCat VI, 347)
See a47.16.168; e50.2:2, 6, 7, 10, 15, 28. t50.2:12, 16.0
321.1.1 Ratna Handurukanda, "Bodhisattva-Yogācāra-Catuḥśatika Ṭīkā", EnBud 3.2, 1972, 248
321.1.1.5 Chapter 14 edited and translated by Karen Christina Lang. M.A.Thesis, U. of Washington 1976
321.1.2 Ichigo Ogawa, "Criticism of kālavāda from the standpoint of Mahāyāna Buddhism--a partial Japanese translation of Candrakīrti's Catuḥśatikaṭīkā (kālārthapratiṣedha nāma ekādaśam prakaraṇam) from a Tibetan text" (in Japanese with English summary). ODKN 29, 1977, 1-53
321.1.3 Koshin Suzuki, Index to the Sanskrit Fragments and Tibetan Translation of Candrakīrti's Bodhisattvayogācāra Catuḥśakaṭīkā, Sanskrit-Tibetan. Two volumes. Tokyo 1994, 1996
321.1.4 Translated by Karen C. Lang as Four Illusions. Candrakīrti's Advice to Travelers on the Bodhisattva Path. Oxford 2002; New York 2003
321.1.8 Koshin Suzuki, "A transliteration of the Sanskrit notes on the Catuḥśatakaṭīkā in the *Lakṣaṇaṭīkā," GJWDJ 189-206
2.Madhyamakāvatāra and Bhāṣya (Mādhyamika) (NCat VI, 347)
See a81.1.25
321.2.1 Text partly translated into French by Louis de la Vallee Poussin. LM n.s. 8, 1907 - 12, 1911
321.2.2 Text edited in Tibetan by Louis de la Vallee Poussin. BBudh 9, 1909, 1912. Reprinted Louvain 1970; Delhi 1992
321.2.3 Chapter 6 of text restored into Sanskrit, with autocommentary, by N.Aiyasvami Sastri. MOS 4, 1929. Also JOR 3-4, 1929-30, Supplement
321.2.4 Robert F. Olson, "Candrakīrti's critique of Vijñānavāda", PEW 24, 1974, 405-412
321.2.4.1 Chapter Two translated in Jeffrey Hopkins, Analysis of Going and Coming. 1976
321.2.5 Jeffrey Hopkins, "In praise of compassion", TJ 3.3, 1978, 21-28
321.2.6 Shiro Matsumoto, "The satyadvaya theory of the Madhyamakāvatārabhāṣya", JIBSt 38.1, 1979, 11-15
321.2.7 Joe Wilson, Chandrakīrti's Seven-Fold Reasoning: Meditation on the Selflessness of Persons. Dharamsala 1980
321.2.8 Chapter 6, verses 166-226 edited and translated into German, with Bhāṣya, by Helmut Tauscher. Wiener Studien zur Tibetologie und Buddhismuskunde, Heft 5, Wien 1981
321.2.9 C.W.Huntington, Jr., "The system of the two truths in the Prasannapadā and the Madhyamakāvatāra: a study in Mādhyamika soteriology", JIP 11, 1983, 77-106
321.2.10 Peter G.Fenner, "A reconstruction of the Madhyamakāvatāra: analysis of the person", JIABS 6.2, 1983, 7-34
321.2.10.5 Translated by Rabten/Batchelor. London 1983. Partly reprinted in SourceBAP 272-297
321.2.11 Peter Fenner, "A study on the relationship between analysis (vicāra) and insight (prajñā) based on the Madhyamakāvatāra". JIP 12, 1984, 139-197
321.2.12 Part of Chapter 6 translated in Artemus Bertine Engle, A Buddhist Theory of Self according to Ācārya Candrakīrti. Ph.D.Thesis, University of Wisconsin at Madison 1983.
321.2.13 Translated by C.W.Huntington in The Emptiness of Emptiness: An Introduction to Early Indian Mādhyamika. Honolulu 1989
321.2.14 Translated by Peter G. Fenner as The Ontology of the Middle Way. Dordrecht 1990
321.2.15 Brian Galloway, "On Madhyamakāvatāra 6.26", IIJ 34, 1991, 199-202
321.2.16 Jose Ignacioo Cabezon, "On retreating to method and other post-modern turns: a response to C.W.Huntington, Jr.", JIABS 15, 1992, 134-143
321.2.17 C.W.Huntington, Jr., "The theory of objectivity: comments on Jose Cabezon's interpretations of mKos grub rje's and C.W.Huntington, Jr.'s interpretation of the Tibetan translation of a seventh century Indian Buddhist text", JIABS 15, 1992, 118-133
321.2.20 Yoshiyasu Yonezawa, "Sanskrit notes on the Madhyamakāvatāra-bhāṣya, Chapter I in the *Lakṣaṇāṭīkā", JIBSt 49.2, 2001, 47-49
321.2.23 Chapter Six translated from Tibetan by Ari Goldfield, Jules Levison, Jim Scott and Birgit Scott under the guidance of Khenpa T sultrim GyantsoRinpoche. Ithaca, N.Y.2005
3.Pañcaskandhapraka
raṇa (NCat VI, 347)
321.3.1 Tibetan text edited, ActOD 40, 1979, 146-156. Reprinted 1995
4.Prasannapadā on Nāgārjuna's Mādhyamikakārikās (NCat VI, 347)
See a44.1.8; 47.4.69; 268.7.38.5; 294.3.3; 294.5.7; 321.2.9. e47.4:2,5,21,23,52,61.s47.4.4. t47.4.12-14,17,20,22
321.4.1 Chapter 2 partially translated into Italian by Giuseppe Tucci in Il Buddismo (Foligno 1926), 234-246
321.4.2 Jacques May, "Récherches sur un système de philosophies bouddhique", BAFS 3, 1954, 21-33
321.4.3 Arnold Kunst, "The function and meaning of the prasaṅga", CIDO 24, Munich 1957, vol. 1, 550-552
321.4.4 Chapter 1 summarized by Satkari Mookerjee in NNMRP 1, 42-58
321.4.5 Johannes Rahder, "Jacques May's translation of Prasannapadā", JIBSt 9.2, 1961, 753-755
321.4.6 J.W.de Jong, "La Madhyamakaśāstrastuti de Candrakīrti", Oriens Extremus 91, 1962, 47-56
321.4.7 Chapter 15 translated by Mervyn Sprung and U.S.Vyas. Anviksiki 6.3-4, 1973, 201-214
321.4.8 Susumu Yamaguchi, Index to the Prasannapadā Madhyamakavṛtti. Volume I: Sanskrit-Tibetan. Volume II: Tibetan-Sanskrit. Kyoto 1974
321.4.9 J.W.de Jong, "Textcritical notes on the Prasannapadā", IIJ 20, 1978, 217-252
321.4.10 Akira Yuyama, "Prajnā-pāramitā-ratna-guṇa-saṃcaya-Gāthā (Rgs) quoted by Candrakīrti in his Prasannapadā", JIBSt 27.1, 1978, 17-20
321.4.11 Partly translated into Italian by Raniero Gnoli in TBIS 381-413
321.4.11.5 Amalia pezzali, "L'importenze di Candrakīrti e delle sue Prasannapadā nel pensiero madhyamaka", SOL 1, 1983, 55-66
321.4.12 Charles Crittenden, "Serenity", JIP 12, 1984, 201-214
321.4.13 Akira Saito, "Textcritical remarks on the Mūlamadhyamakakārikās as cited in the Prasannapadā", JIBSt 33.2, 1985, 24-28
321.4.14 I.W.Mabbott, "An annotated translation of Chapter XVI of Candrakīrti's Prasannapadā", JAIH 15, 1985-86, 47-84. Also JDPaliUC 4, 1987-88. 100-112
321.4.15 Helmut Tauscher, "On parabhava and paramārtha", WZKSOA 33, 1989, 183-202
321.4.16 Bibhuti S. Yadav, "Methodic deconstruction", IntptR 129-168
321.4.20 Anne MacDonald, "The Prasannapada: more manuscripts from Nepal", WZKS 44, 2000, 165-182
321.4.10 Anne MacDonald, "Interpreting Prasannapadā 19.3-7 in context. A response to Claus Oetke", WZKSOA 47, 2003, 143-196
321.4.12 Claus Oetke, "Prasannapadā 19.3-7 and its context", WZKSOA 47, 2003, 111-142
321.4.13 Dan Arnold, "Materials for a Mādhyamika critique of foundationalism: an annotated translation of Prasannapadā 55.11 to 75.13", JIABS 28, 2005, 411-468
321.4.15 Yoshiyasu Yonezawa, "*Lakṣaṇaṭīkā. Sanskrit notes on the Prasannapadā (1)", JNIBS 27, 2004, 114-154; 28, 2005, 159-179; 29, 2006, 135-163; 30, 2007, 203-235
321.4.18 Ultrich Timme Kragh, Early Buddhist Theories of Action and Result: a Study of Karmaphalasambudha Candrakiṛti's Prasannapadā verses 17.1-20. Wien 2006
5.Commentary on Āryadeva's Śataśāstra
6.Vṛtti on Nāgārjuna's Śūnyatāsaptati
321.6.1 On sutras 1-14 edited by Felix Raymond Erb. Stuttgart 1997
7.Triṣaraṇasaptati
321.7.1 Edited and translated as The Septuagint on the Three Refuges by Peter K. Sorenson. Wien 1986.
8.Vṛtti on Nāgārjuna's Yuktiśāstikā
See e47.15:2, 12
321.8.1 Edited and translated into French by Cristina Anna Scherrer-Schaub. MCB 25, 1991
321.8.2 Cristina Anna Scherrer-Schaub, "Candrakīrti sur les traces du jina im marge de le Yuktiṣaṣṭikāvṛtti", BSPF 59-63
9.General
See a47.16:38,80,113,125.0; 50.6:9,11. b50.6.10
321.9.1 Nathmal Tatia, "The avyākṛtas or indeterminables", NNMRP II, 1960, 139-160
321.9.1.5 Heramba Chatterjee, "Candrakīrti", EnBud 3.4, 1971, 649-655
321.9.2 Robert A.F.Thurman, "Philosophical nonegocentrism in Wittgenstein and Candrakīrti in their treatment of the private language problem", PEW 30, 1980, 321-338
321.9.3 William L. Ames, "The notion of svabhāva in the thought of Candrakīrti", JIP 10, 1982, 161-177
321.9.3.1 Artemus Bertine Engle, The Buddhist Theory of Self according to Ācārya Candrakīrti. Ph.D.Thesis, University of Wisconsin at Madison 1983
321.9.4 Peter G. Fenner, "Candrakīrti's refutation of Buddhist idealism", PEW 33, 1983, 251-262
321.9.5 Cesare Rizzi, Candrakīrti (in Italian). Bologna 1983. Translated into English, Delhi 1988
321.9.6 James Duerlinger, "Candrakīrti's denial of the self", PEW 34, 1984, 261-272
321.9.7 Christine A. Scherrer-Schaub, "Tendance de la pensée de Candrakīrti, Buddhajñāna et Jinakriyā", BF 3, 1994, 249-272
321.9.8 John D. Dunne, "Thoughtless Buddha, passionate Buddha", JAAR 64, 1996, 525-536
321.9.11 Kodo Yotsuya, The Critique of Svatantra Reasoning by Candrakirti and Tsong-kha-pa: a Study of Philosophical Proof according to Two Prasangika Madhyamaka Traditions of India and Tibet. Stuttgart 1999
321.9.14 Dan Arnold, "How to do things with Candrakirti: a comparative study in anti-skepticism", PEW 51, 2001, 247-279
321.9.18 C.W.Huntington, Jr., "Was Candrakīrti a Prāsaṅgika?", SPD 67-92
321.9.19 Roger R. Jackson, "Candrakīrti", EnB 1, 2001, 111
321.9.21 Chizuko Yoshimizu, "Tsong khapa's reevaluation of Candrakīrti's criticism of autonomous inference", SPD 257-288
321.9.25 Dan Arnold, "Candrakīrti against bare particulars", BBB 143-174
321.9.26 Dan Arnold, "Is it really true that everything is empty? Candrakīrti on essencelessness as the essence of things", BBB 175-204
321.9.30 Richard P. Hayes, "Candrakīrti", EnBuddhism 194-195
321.9.35 Kevin A. Vose, Resurrecting Candrakīrti. Disputes in the Tibetan Creation of Prāsaṅgika. Somerville, Mass. 2008
322.Gauḍapāda (600)
1.Bhāṣya on Īśvarakṛṣṇa's Sāṃkhyakārikās
See a423.1.4. e163.1:3,10,30,33,46,48,61. t163.1:55,60,92. et163.1.17,41,59. d163.1.24.
322.1.1 Selections translated in HTR 64-68
322.1.2 Summarized by G.J.Larson. Samkhya 219-224
2.Dīpikā on the Uttaragītā
322.2.1 Edited by Gangadhara Bhatta Sarma. Bombay 1968
3.General
322.3.1 N.B.Chakraborty, "Gauḍapāda: his works and views", CR 145, 1957, 89-96
322A.Āryaśūra (600) (NCat II, 173)
1.Parāmitāsāra (NCat II, 173)
322A.1.1 Edited by Alfonso Ferrari. Vatican City, Rome 1946
2.Bodhisattvakarmaphalasaṃkṣiptanirdeśasūtra (NCat II, 173)
3.Pāramitāsamāsa
322A.3.0 Carol Jean Meadows, Ārya-sūra's 'Compendium of the Perfections'. Translation and Analysis of the Pāramitāsamāsa. Ph.D.Thesis, Columbia University 1976. Printed New York 1976, 1978
322A.3.1 Edited and translated by Carol Meadows. Bonn 1986
322A.3.3 Naoki Saito, Das Kompendium der imnoralischen Vollkommenheiten Vairocanarakṣita: tibetische Ubertregung von Āryaśūras Pāramitāsamāsa samt Neuausgabe des Sanskṛttextes. Marburg 2000
322A.4.Praṇidhānasaptati
322A.4.1 Edited in Tibetan and translated by Brian C. Beresford with L.T.Doboom Tulku, Gonsar Tulku, Sherpa Tulkuk. Dharamsala 1978, 1981
323.Author Unknown (610)
1.Pañcapāramitānirdeśasūtra
See a33.1.30
325.Author Unknown (610)
1.Maṇḍalāṣṭasūtra (T.486)
326.Author Unknown (610)
1.Āryatathāgatānāṃbuddhakṣetraguṇoktadharmaparyayasūtra (T.290)
327.Author Unkown (610)
1.Buddhahṛdayadhāraṇīsūtra (T.918-919)
328.Author Unknown (610)
1.Devatāsūtra (T.592)
329.Author Unknown (610)
1.(Ārya)Nandīmitrāvadānasūtra (T.2030)
330.Author Unknown (610)
1.Praśāntaviniścayapratihāryasūtra (T.648; Toh. 129)
331.Author Unknown (610)
1.Sāhasraprajñāpāramitāsūtra (T.220(1))
332-333.(unassigned)
334.Uddyotakara (610) (NCat II, 337)
1.Nyāyavārttika on Vātsyāyana's Nyāyabhāṣya
See a220.1.13; 268.7:24.1, 27.1; 268.10.31; 304.12.3. e48.1:9,14,29,50,70. t48.1.25
334.1.1 Satischandra Vidyabhusana, "Uddyotakara, a contemporary of Dharmakīrti", JRAS 1914, 601-606
334.1.2 Erich Frauwallner, "Zu den Fragmenten buddhistischer Logiker im Nyāyavārttikam", WZKM 40, 1933, 281-304
334.1.3 A.Vostrikov, "Nyāyavārttika of Uddyotakara and the Vādanyāya of Dharmakīrti", IHQ 11, 1935, 1-31
334.1.4 Anantalal Thakur, "Uddyotakara as a Vaiśeṣika", PAIOC 15, 1949, 327-334
334.1.5 Gerhard Oberhammer, "On the sources in Jayanta Bhaṭṭa and Uddyotakara", WZKSOA 6, 1962, 91-150
334.1.6 Anantalal Thakur, "Textual studies in the Nyāyavārttika", WZKSOA 12-13, 1968-69, 379-388
334.1.7 Selections translated in HTR 111-112
334.1.8 Summarized by Karl H. Potter. EnIndPh2, 1977, 303-437
334.1.9 Curtis F. Oliver, "Perception in early Nyāya", JIP 6, 1978, 243-266
334.1.10 Arindam Chakravarti, 'The Nyāya proofs for the existence of the soul", JIP 10, 1982, 211-238
334.1.10.0 Richard P. Hayes, "Uddyotakara on the whole and its parts", Tetsugaku (The Journal of Hiroshima Philosophical Society) 38, 1986, 17-29
334.1.10.1 Bimal Krishna Matilal, "Apoha: Uddyotakara's critique of Diṅnāga", IJBS 1.2, 1989, 4-12
334.1.10.2 Citrarekha V. Kher, "Buddhism as presented by Uddyotakara in the Nyāyavārttika", BPBS 13-46
334.1.11 Michael Torsten Much, "Uddyotakaras kritik des apoha-lehre (Nyāyavārttika ad NS II.2.66)", WZKSOA 38, 1994, 351-366
334.1.12 Yosuhiro Okazaki, "Uddyotakara's vyatireki-hetu", JIBST 44.1, 1995, 1-4
334.1.13 Ernst Prets, "Dharmakīrti's refutation of kevalānvayin and kevalavyatirekin reasons in the light of the Naiyāyika's view", DTI 333-340
334.1.16 Yasuhiro Okazaki, "Asādhāraṇa-hetvābhāsa and Uddyotakara's vyatirekin", Sambhasa 23, 2003, 39-52
334.1.18 Michiko Ishitohi, "The propositional logic of Uddyotakara", TMSR 393-406
334.1.20 Discussed in Anantalal Thakur, ODVS 373-380
335.Author Unknown (610)
1.Avalokiteśvaraikādaśānukhadhāraṇīsūtra
337.Author Unknown (625)
1.Caturdharmanirdeśasūtra (T.772-773)
337.1.1 Translated into French in Feer 197-198
337.1.2 Ratna Handurukande, "Caturdharmanirdeśasūtra", EnBud 3.4, 1977, 718
338.-339.(unassigned)
340.Author Unknown (625)
1.Ghanavyūhasūtra (T.681-682)
342.Īśvarasena (625) (NCat II, 279)
1.General
342.1.1 Ernst Steinkellner, "Bemerkungen zu Isvarasena's Lehre vom Grund", WZKS 10, 1966, 73-85
342.1.2 Shri Nivas Shastri, "Ācārya Īśvarasena: a historical and philosophical study", Bh 12-14, 1968-71, 324-330
342.1.3 Ernst Steinkellner, "Kumārila, Īśrasena and Dharmakīrti in dialogue: a new interpretation of Pramāṇavārttika I. 33", BVSK 625-646
342.1.4 Tom J. F. Tillemans, "Pre-Dharmakīrti commentators on Dignāga's definition of a thesis", BF 3, 1994, 295-305
343.Author Unknown (635)
1.Dīrghanakhaparivrājakaparipṛcchāsūtra (T.584)
344.Dharmakīrti (640) (NCat IX, 240-241)
1.Hetubindu (NCat IX, 241)
344.1.1 Reconstructed into Sanskrit and edited, with Bhaṭṭa Ārcaṭa's Ṭīkā and Durveka Miśra's Āloka, by Sukhlalji Sanghvi. GOS 113, 1949
344.1.2 Edited in Tibetan, reconstructed into Sanskrit, and translated into German by Ernst Steinkellner. OAWV 4-5, 1967. Two volumes
344.1.2.5 Rita Gupta, "The Buddhist doctrine of momentariness and its presuppositions: Dharmakīrti's arguments in Hetubindu", JIP 8, 1980, 47-68. Reprinted ETB 525-546
344.1.3 Hisakuni Saito, "Anupalabdhi in Hetubindu", JIBSt 41.2, 1993, 37-39
344.1.4 Edited and translated by P. P. Gokhale. Delhi 1997
344.1.7 Chizuko Yoshimizu, "Augenblicklichkeit (kṣaṇikatva) und Eigenwesen (svabhāva): Dharmakītis Polemik im Hetubindu", WZKSOA 47, 2003, 197-216
2.Laukikapramāṇaparīkṣā
344.2.1 Christian Lindtner, "À propos Dharmakīrti: two new works and a new date", ActOD 41, 1980, 27-38
344.2.2 Ernst Steinkellner, "À propos of Lindtner's two new works", Prajnajyoti 277-286
3.Nyāyabindu (Vijñānavāda) (NCat IX, 240)
344.3.1 Edited by P. Peterson. BI 128, 1889. Reissued with Dharmottara's Ṭīkā, 1929
344.3.2 K.B.Pathak, "On the authorship of the Nyāyabindu", JASBo 19, 1895-97, 47-57
344.3.3 Edited and translated into Russian, with Dharmottara's Ṭīkā, by Th. Stcherbatsky. BBudh 7-8, St. Petersburg 1903-1904, 1918. Reprinted Osnabruck 1970; Delhi 1992
344.3.4 G.A.Jacob, "Note on the authorship of Nyāyabindu", JRAS 1905, 361-362
344.3.5 Edited in Tibetan, with Vinītadeva's Ṭīkā, by Louis de la Vallee Poussin. With a Tibetan-Sanskrit index prepared by Satischandra Vidyabhusana. BI 171, 1907-1913; 230, 1917. Reprinted Calcutta 1984
344.3.6 Summarized by Vidyabhusana in ILMS and HIL, 309-318
344.3.6.1 Translated, with Dharmottara's commentary, by Harisatya Bhattacharya. MB 31, 1923 - 33, 1925
344.3.8 Edited, with Dharmottara's Ṭīkā, by Candrasekhara Sastri. HSS 22, 1924. Reprinted 1954. Reprinted as KSS 22, 1982
344.3.9 Th. Stcherbatsky and E. Obermiller, Indices Verborum Sanscrit-Tibetan and Tibetan-Sanscrit to Nyāyabindu of Dharmakīrti and the Nyāyabinduṭīkā of Dharmottara. BBudh 24-25, 1927-28; Delhi 1992
344.3.10 Rakesaranjan Sarma, "The Buddhistic theory of perception", PQ 5, 1929-30, 214-243
344.3.11 Translated, with Dharmottara's Ṭīkā, by Th. Stcherbatsky in BL II. Reprinted 'S-Gravenhage 1958; New York 1962; Osnabruck 1970; Tokyo 1977; Delhi 1992
344.3.12 D.Chatterji, "Collation of the editions of the Sanskrit text of the Nyāyabindu and the Nyāyabinduṭīkā, published in the Bibliotheca India and the Bibliotheca Buddhica", JASBe n.s. 28, 1932, 251-294
344.3.13 Satkari Mookerjee, "The grounds of inference as classified by Dharmakīrti", SB 2, 63-67
344.3.13.1 Edited with Dharmottara's commentary by P.I.Tarkas. Akola, 1952
344.3.14 Edited, with Dharmottara's Ṭīkā and Durveka Miśra's Dharmottarapradīpa, by Dalsukh Malvania. TSWS 2, 1955, 1971
344.3.15 Edited in Bengali script by Bidhubhusan Nyaya-Tarkatirtha. OH 11.2, 1963, 1-20
344.3.16 Edited and translated, with Vinītadeva's Ṭīkā, by Mrinalkanti Gangopadhyaya. Calcutta 1971
344.3.17 Edited, with Dharmottara's Ṭīkā, by Srinivasa Sastri. Meerut 1975
344.3.18 Alex Wayman, "A reconsideration of Dharmakīrti's 'deviation' from Dignāga on pratyakṣābhāsa", ABORI 58-59, 1977-78, 387-396
344.3.19 Edited with Dharmottara's Ṭīkā by Candra Sekhar Sastri. Varanasi 1982
344.3.20 Edited and summarized, with Dharmottara's Ṭīkā, Vinitadeva's Ṭippaṇī, and an unknown author's Ṭippaṇi, by Dwarikadas Sastri. Varanasi 1985
344.3.20.1 Edited with Dharmottara's Tika by Nitina R. Desai. LDS 112, 1991
344.3.21 Edited and translated by G. C. Pande. Sarnath 1996
344.3.23 Translated by Alex Wayman in MBL
344.3.25 Piotr Balcerowicz, "Taxonomic approach to dṛṣṭāntābhāsa in Nyāyabindu and in Siddharṣigaṇi's Nyāyāvatāravṛtti--Dharmakīrti's typology and the Jaina criticism thereof", DTI 1-15
344.3.28 Shodo Yamakami, "Dharmakīrti vs. Bhāsarvajña on perception", DTI 449-457
344.3.32 Neelima Sinha, "Nyāyabindu on negation", NKWGI 45-107
344.3.35 Horst Lasic, "Placing the Taba tshad ma materials in the general development of tshad ma studies in Tibet. Part One: The study of the Nyāyabindu", Pramanakirti 483-496
4.Pramāṇavārttika and Bhasya (Vijñānavāda) (NCat IX, 240)
See a268.7:27, 29, 40.5; 342.1.3. e174.6.11
344.4.1 Verses 42-187 of Chapter One edited in Tibetan and translated into German, with Dharmottara's Apohaprakaraṇa, by Erich Frauwallner in "Beiträge zur Apohalehre", WZKM 37, 1930 - 44, 1936
344.4.2 Vidhusekhara Bhattacharya, "The Pramāṇavārttika of Dharmakīrti", IHQ 13, 1937, 153
344.4.3 Edited, with Manorathanandin's Vṛtti, by Rahula Sankrtyayana. JBRS 24, 1938, Appendix
344.4.4 Vidhusekhara Bhattacharya, "Guṇaratna's Tarkarahasyadīpikā and Dharmakīrti's Pramāṇavārttika", IHQ 16, 1940, 143-144
344.4.5 Chapters 2-4 edited (including kārikās of Sambandhaparīkṣā), with Prajñākaragupta's Bhāṣya by Rahula Sankrtyayana. Allahabad 1943. In to volumes, Patna 1953, 1955
344.4.6 Svārthānumāna chapter edited, with Karṇagomin's Ṭīkā, by Rahula Sankrtyayana. Patna 1938; Allahabad 1943. Reprinted Kyoto 1982
344.4.6.1 Pramanasiddhi chapter translated in Masatoshi Nagatomi, A Study of Dharmakirti's Pramanavarttika. Ph.D.Thesis, Harvard University, June 1957
344.4.7 Svārthānumāna chapter edited with autocommentary by Dalsukh Malvania. Varanasi 1959
344.4.8 Masatoshi Nagatomi, "The framework of the Pramāṇavārttika, Book One", JAOS 79, 1959, 263-266
344.4.9 Chapter One edited with autocommentary by Raniero Gnoli. SerOR 23, 1960
344.4.10 I. Yamada, "Pramāṇavārttika and Pramāṇaviniścaya", JIBSt 8, 1960, 42-45
344.4.10.2 Chapter one edited by Raniero Gnoli. Rome 1960
344.4.11 Tilmann Vetter, Erkenntnisprobleme bei Dharmakīrti. OAWV 1, 1963
344.4.12 Kārikās 1-51 edited and translated, with autocommentary, by Satkari Mookerjee and Hojun Nagasaki. Nalanda 1964
344.4.13 Edited, with Manorathanandin's Vṛtti, by Dwarikadas Sastri. Varanasi 1968
344.4.14.1 Edited in Tibetan, with Sakyamati's Tika. Three volumes. Dharamsala 1970
344.4.15 Kārikās edited by Yusho Miyasaka. ActInd 2, 1971-72, 1-206. Index: ActInd 3, 1973-75, 1-157
344.4.16 Ernst Steinkellner, "Wirklichket und Begriff bei Dharmakīrti", WZKSOA 15, 1971, 179-212
344.4.16.1 Leonard Zwilling, Dharmakīrti on Apoha. The Ontology, Epistemology and Semantics of Negation in the Svārthānumāna-pariccheda of the Pramāṇavarttikam. Ph.D.Thesis, University of Wisconsin at Madison 1976
344.4.17 G.L.Chaturvedi, "The concept of self-luminosity of knowledge in Pramāṇavārttika", Rtam 10, 1978-79, 27-36
344.4.17.5 Yosho Mioyasaka, "An Index to the Pramāṇavarttikakārikā. Part II (Tibetan-Sanskrit Section). ActInd 4, 1976-79, 1-179
344.4.18 L.W.J. van der Kuijp, "Introductory notes to the Pramāṇavārttika based on Tibetan sources", TJ 4.2, 1979, 6-28
344.4.18.1 S. Ota and P.R.Vora, "A translation of Pramāṇavārttika I and Svavṛtti (2)", Saga Ryukoku Tankridaigaku Kiyo 26, 1980, 1-19
344.4.19 Leonard Zwilling, "Sa skya Pandita's version of Pramāṇavārttika III.3--a case study in the influence of exegesis upon translation in Tibet", StIndPh 304-314
344.4.20 N.J.Shah, "Essentials of Dharmakīrti's theory of knowledge (based on the Pramāṇavārttika)", SzumJB 251-260
344.4.21 Tadashi Tatani, "Pramāṇavārttika IV (Parārthānumāna) (1) - Vastubāla pravṛtānumāna from the standpoint of 'Transzendental Pragmatik' (Hermeneutik)" (in Japanese with English translation). KKKSG 17, 1981, 11-24
344.4.22 Svārthānumāna and Svavṛtti thereon translated by Pradyumna R. Vora. Part 3, SRTDK 28, 1982, 1-22
344.4.23 Roger Reid Jackson, Is Enlightenment Possible? An Analysis of Some Arguments in the Buddhist Philosophical Tradition with special attention to the Pramāṇasiddhi Chapter of Dharmakīrti's Pramāṇavārttika. Ph.D.Thesis, University of Wisconsin at Madison 1983.
344.4.24 Pramāṇasiddhi 1-6 translated in Shoryu Katsura, "Dharmakīrti's theory of truth", JIP 12, 1984, 215-235
344.4.25 Pramāṇasiddhi edited and translated into German by Tilmann Vetter in Der Buddha und Seine Lehre in Dharmakīrti's Pramāṇavārttika. Wiener Studien zur Tibetologie und Buddhismuskunde, Heft 12, Wien 1984
344.4.26 Roger Jackson, "Dharmakīrti's refutation of theism", PEW 36, 1986, 315-348
344.4.27 M. Inami and T.J.F.Tillemans, "Another look at the framework of the Pramāṇasiddhi chapter of Pramāṇavārttika", WZKSOA 30, 1986, 123-142.
344.4.28 Tom J.F. Tillemans, "Pramāṇavārttika IV", WZKSOA 30, 1986, 143-162; 31, 1987, 141-162.
344.4.29 Richard P. Hayes, "On the reinterpretation of Dharmakīrti's svabhāvahetu", JIP 15, 1987, 319-332
344.4.30 Mangala R. Chinchore, "Dharmakīrti on the distinction between svārthānumāna and parārthānumāna", IndPQ 15, 1988, 177-188
344.4.31 K. Kunjunni Raja, "Pramāṇavārttika--textual problem of pratyakṣa-I", ALB 52, 1988, 111-113
344.4.31.1 Georges Dreyfus, "Dharmakīrti's definition of pramāṇa and its interpreters", StBudEp 20-38
344.4.31.2 Eli Franco, "The disjunction in Pramāṇavārttika Pramāṇasiddhi Chapter Verse 5c", StBudEp 39-51
344.4.31.3 Brendan S. Gillon, "Dharmakīrti and the problem of induction", StBudEp 53-58
344.4.31.4 Brendan S.Gillon, "Word order in the Svārthānumāna chapter of Dharmakīrti's Pramāṇavārttika", StBudEp 59-68
344.4.31.5 Kyo Kano, "On the background of Pramāṇavārttika II, 12ab - the origin of Dharmakīrti's idea of arthakriyā", StBudEp 119-128
344.4.31.6 Toshihiko Kimura, "Dharmakīrtis Sprachtheorie - eine synopse", StBudEp 147-153
344.4.31.7 Christian Lindtner, "The initial verses of the Pramāṇasiddhi chapter in the Pramāṇavārttika", StBudEp 155-159
344.4.31.8 Tabe E. Meindersma, "A brief reference to apoha theory in the section on paralokasiddhi in Pramāṇavārttika II", StBudEp 169-174
344.4.32 Edited, with Svopajñavṛtti and Manorathanandin's Vṛtti, by Ram Chandra Pandeya. Delhi 1989
344.4.33 Chapter 2, verses 1-7 translated in Vittorio A. von Bijlert, Epistemology and Spiritual Authority (Vienna 1989).
344.4.33.1 Tom J.F.Tillemans, "Dharmakīrti on some sophisms", StBudEp 403-418,
344.4.34 Chapter 2, edited and translated in T. Vetter, Der Buddha und seine Lehre in Dharmakīrtis Pramāṇavārttika. Der Abschnitt über den Buddha und die vieren Wahrheiten im Pramāṇasiddhi-Kapitel 2, verbessente Auflage. Wien 1990
344.4.35 Richard P. Hayes and Brendan S. Gillon, "Introduction to Dharmakīrti's theory of inference as presented in Pramāṇavārttika Svopajñavṛtti 1-10", JIP 19, 1991, 1-74
344.4.36 C.S.Vyas, Buddhist Theory of Perception with special reference to Pramāṇavārttika of Dharmakīrti. New Delhi 1991
344.4.36.1 Edited with Prajnakaragupta's Bhasya by Yogindrananda. Volume I. Varanasi 1991
344.4.38 Shoryu Katsura, "Pramāṇavārttika IV.202-206--towards the correct understanding of svabhāvapratibandha", JIBSt 40.2, 1992, 35-40
344.4.38.1 Portions edited in Dwarika Das Shastri, Apohavada. A Basic Principle of Buddhist Philosophy (Varanasi 1992
344.4.39 Book Four, Section Three edited and translated in Tom J.F.Tillemans, "Pramāṇavārttika IB (3)", AS 46.1, 1992, 437-467
344.4.39.1 Chapter Two, Pramāṇasiddhi, edited and translated in Roger R. Jackson, Is Enlightenment Possible? Dharmakīrti and rGyaltshab rje on Knowledge, Rebirth, No-self and Liberation. New York 1993
344.4.40 Tom J.F. Tillemans, "Pramāṇavārttika IV.14", WZKSOA 37, 1993, 135-164
344.4.41 Edition and translation of IV.48-71 in Tom J.F.Tillemans, "Pramāṇavārttika IV (4)", WZKSOA 37, 1993, 135-164
344.4.41.1 Takashi Iwata, Prasanga und Prasangaparyaya bei Dharmakirti und seinem Kommentaren. Wien 1993
344.4.42 Eli Franco, "Ālayavijñāna and kliṣṭamanas in the Pramāṇavārttika", WZKSOA 38, 1994, 367-378
344.4.43 Eli Franco, "Vaiśeṣika or Cārvāka? The mysterious opponent in Pramāṇavārttika 2.63-72", AS 48, 1994, 683-698
344.4.44 Tom J.F.Tillemans, "Pramāṇavārttika IV (5)", WZKSOA 39, 1995, 103-150
344.4.45 Chapter Two, Pramāṇasiddhi, edited and translated in Eli Franco, Dharmakīrti on Compassion and Rebirth. Wiener Studien zur Tibetologie und Buddhismuskunde. Heft 38. Wien 1997
344.4.46 Eli Franco, "Distortion as a price for comprehensibility? The rGyal tshab - Jackson interpretation of Dharmakīrti", JIABS 20.1, 1997, 133-148
344.4.46.1 Eli Franco, "The Tibetan translation of the Pramāṇavārttika and the development of translation methods from Sanskrit to Tibetan", TibSt 277-288
344.4.47 Eli Franco, "A short response to Roger Jackson's reply", JIABS 20.1, 1997, 149-152
344.4.48 Motoi Ono, "A reconsideration of the controversy about the order of the chapters of the Pramāṇavārttika", TibSt 701-716
344.4.50 Eli Franco, "Two circles or parallel lines?", DTI 53-72
344.4.52 Jonardon Ganeri, "Dharmakīrti's semantics for the particle eva", DTI 101-115
344.4.53 Brendan S. Gillon, "Another look at the Sanskrit particle eva", DTI 117-130
344.4.55 Roger R. Jackson, "Atheology and Buddhology in Dharmakīrti's Pramāṇavārttika", FPh 16, 1999, 472-505
344.4.55.5 Verses 1-11 of each chapter translated by Alex Wayman in MBL
344.4.56 Claus Oetke, "The disjunction in the Pramāṇasiddhi", DTI 243-251. Response by Eli Franco, 253-259, and Clarification by Oetke, 261-266.
344.4.57 Tom J. F. Tillemans, "How much of a proof is scripturally based inference (āgamāśritānumāna)", DTI 395-404
344.4.58 John Dowling Dunne, Foundations of Dharmakirti's Philosophy: A Study of the Central Issues in His Ontology, Logic and Epistemology with Particular Attention to the Svopajnavrtti. Ph.D.Thesis, Harvard University 1999
344.4.60 Chapter Four traslated by Tom J. F. Tillemans. I: k.1-148, OAWV 675, Wien 2000
344.4.70 Toshikazu Watanabe, "Causality and the notion of bheda", JIBSt 53.2, 2005, 27-30
344.4.75 Vincent Eltschinger, Penser l'autorité des Ecritures: la polémique de Dharmakiṛti contra la notion brahmanique orthodoxe d'un Veda sans auteurs autor de Pramāṇavārttika 1.213-268 et Svavrṭi. Wien 2007
344.4.77 Claus Oetke, "Some aspects of textual exegesis with regard to Dharmakīrti's sattvānumāna", EMH 571-585
344.4.77 Parimal G. Patil, "Dharmakīrti's white lie–philosophy, pedagogy, and truth in late Indian Buddhism", Pramanakirti 597-620
344.4.80 Koji Tanaka, "Dharmakīrti and Priest on an inconsistent theory of change–a comment on Mortenson", PEW 57. 2007, 244-252. Responses by Moretnson (253-256) and by Tanaka (257-258)
344.4.85 R.S.Gillon and R.P.Hayes, "Dharmakīrti on the role of causation in inference as presented in Pramāṇavārttika Svopajñavṛtti 11-38", JIP 36.3, 2008, 335-404
5.Pramāṇaviniścaya (Vijñānavāda) (NCat IX, 240)
See a268.4.10; 344.4.10. b419.6.1
344.5.1 Pratyakṣa chapter edited by Tilmann Vetter. OAWV 3, 1966
344.5.2 Svārthānumāna chapter edited in Sanskrit and Tibetan by Ernst Steinkellner. Two volumes. OAWV 12, 1973, 1978
344.5.3 Ernst Steinkellner, "New Sanskrit fragments of Pramāṇaviniṣcayaḥ, first chapter", WZKSOA 16, 1973, 199-206
344.5.4 Shiro Matsumoto, "Svabhāvapratibandha", JIBSt 30.1, 1981, 10-14
344.5.5 Christian Lindtner, "Marginalia to Dharmakīrti's Pramāṇaviniścaya I-II", WZKSOA 28, 1984, 149-176
344.5.5.1 Takashi Iwata, "On the classification of the three kinds of reason in Pramāṇaviniścaya III - reduction of reasons to svabhāvahetu and kāryahetu", StBudEp 85-96
344.5.7.1 Sanjit Kumar Sadhukan, "Pramāṇa-Viniścaya--in India and Tibet", JASBe 33, 1991, 66-71
344.5.7.2 Kazunobu Matsuda and Ernst Steinkellner, "The Sanskrit manuscript of Dharmakirti's Pramanaviniscaya (Report on a single folio fragment from the National Archives Collectioj, Kathmandu), WZKS 35, 1991, 139-150
344.5.7.3 Elliot Stern, "Additional fragments of Pramanaviniscayah I-II", WZKS 35, 1991, 151-168
344.5.7.4 Tilmann, Vetter, "Pāramārthika-pramāṇa in Dharmakīrti's Pramāṇa-viniścaya and in Gtsang-nag-pa's Tshad-ma rnam-pa nges-pa'i ṭi-ka legs-bshad bdus-pa", Tibetan Studies 5.1, 1992, 327-334
344.5.8 Takashi Iwata, "Pramāṇaviniścaya III. 64-67", WZKSOA 37, 1993, 165-200
344.5.9 Takashi Iwata, "Pramāṇaviniścaya III (1)", WZKSOA 39, 1995, 151-180; "(2)", WZKSOA 41, 1997, 207-232
344.5.10 Shodo Yamakami, "The Pramāṇaviniścaya I vv. 10-11ab as quoted in the Nyāyabhūṣaṇa", JIBSt 43.2, 1995, 10-16
344.5.11 Helmut Krasser, "rNgog lotsaba in the sahopalambhaniyama proof in Dharmakirti's Pramanaviniscaya", StudiaInd4 63-88
344.5.13 Takashi Iwata, "Pramāṇaciniścaya III (3). Die bedeutung der worter artha und prakāśana in der definition des parārthānumāna", WZKSOA 43, 1999, 213-230
344.5.15 Chizuko Yoshimizu, "The development of sattvānumāna for the refutation of a permanent existence in the Sautrāntika tradition", WZKSOA 43, 1999, 231-254
344.5.18 Takashi Iwata, "An analysis of examples for the interpretation of the word iṣṭaḥ in Dharmakīrti's definition of a thesis", Pramanakirti 315-344
6.Sambandhaparīkṣā and Vṛtti thereon (NCat IX, 241)
See e174.6.11
344.6.1 Edited in Tibetan and (in part) in Sanskrit and translated into German, with Śaṃkarānanda's Anusāra, by Erich Frauwallner. WZKM 41, 1934, 261-300
344.6.2 Edited with Prabhācandra's Vyākhyā, Dharmakīrti's Vādanyāya and Śāntarakṣita's Vipañcitārtha thereon, by Dwarikadas Shastri. Varanasi 1972
344.6.3 Edited and translated, with Prabhācandra's commentary, in V.N.Jha, The Philosophy of Relations. Delhi 1990
344.6.3.5 Edited in Madhumita Chattopadhyaya, Philosophical Studies on the Sambandhaparikṣa of Ḍharmakīrti: embodyiong the text, commentary of Prabhācandra, Bengali translation, and expository critical notes. Calcutta 1993
344.6.4 Helmut Tauscher, "Tanjur fragments from the ms. collection at Ta pho monastery. Sambandhaparīkṣā with its commentaries Vṛtti and Ṭīkā", EAW 44, 1994, 173-184
7.Saṃtānāntarasiddhi (Vijñānavāda) (NCat IX, 241)
344.7.1 Edited, with Vinītadeva's Ṭīkā, by Th. Stcherbatsky. BBudh 19, 1916. Reprinted Osnabruck 1970; Taipei 1984; Delhi 1992
344.7.2 Translated into Russian, with Vinītadeva's Ṭīkā, by Th.Stcherbatsky. St. Petersburg 1922. This translated by Harish C. Gupta, ISPP 10, 1969, 335-383
344.7.3 Translated by Hidenori Kitagawa, JGIS 14, 1955. Reprinted in H. Kitagawa, Dignāga no Taikei (Kyoto 1965)
344.7.4 Shoryu Katsura, "Dharmakīrti's Saṃtānāntarasiddhi--Japanese translation and synopsis" (in Japanese with English summary). HDBK 43, 1983, 102-120
344.7.5 Ramesh Kumar Sharma, "Dharmakīrti on the existence of other minds", JIP 13, 1985, 65-71
344.7.6 Noble Ross Reat, "A Buddhist proof for the existence of God", JIP 13, 1985, 265-272
344.7.7 Translated by Thomas E. Wood in Mind Only: A Philosophical and Doctrinal Analysis of the Vijnanavada. (Honolulu 1991), 207-218.
344.7.8 Restored and edited, with Vinitadeva's Tika, by M.R.Chinchore. Sarnath 1997
344.7.9 Edited with Vinītadeva's Ṭīkā by J. S. Nagi. Sarnath 1997
344.7.12 Shoryu Katsura, "Dharmakiṛti's proof of the existence of other minds", Pramanakirti 407-422
8.Vādanyāya
See a334.1.3. e344.6.2
344.8.1 Edited, with Śāntarakṣita's commentary, by Rahula Sankrtyayana. JBRS 21.4, 1935 - 22.1, Appendix.
344.8.1.1 Edited with Santaraksita's Vipanictartha by Dwarikadas Shastri. Varanasi 1972
344.8.2 Mangala R. Chinchore, Vādanyāya: A Glimpse of Nyāya-Buddhist Controversy. BIBS 36, 1988
344.8.2.0 Edited with Santaraksita's commentary by Ramchandra Pandeya, Raghavendra Pandey and Manju. Delhi 1988
344.8.2.1 Mangala R. Chinchore, "Post-Udayana Nyāya reactions to Dharmakīrti's Vādanyāya -- an evaluation", StBudEp 3-17. Also IndPQ 17.1, 1990, 1-32
344.8.2.2 Ernst Steinkellner, "The logic of the svabhāvahetu in Dharmakīrti's Vādanyāya", StBudEp 311-324
344.8.4 Edited and translated by Michael Torsten Much. Two volumes. Wien 1991
344.8.5 Edited and translated by Pradeep P. Gokhale. Delhi 1993
344.8.6 Roland Steiner, "Standard works on Indian literature--a critique with special reference to A.K.Warder's treatment of Dharmakīrti's Vādanyāya 19.9-17", BVSK 615-623
9.General
See a47.16.31; 174.10.44; 268.7:15, 27.1; 268.10:14, 23, 30, 43.1, 31.1, 32, 34, 36, 39, 177; 294.5.17; 302.5.5; 334.1:1,13; 352.5.6; 417.1.3. b268.10.26; H3880
344.9.1 K.B.Pathak, "Dharmakīrti and Śaṃkarāchārya", JASBo 18, 1890-94, 88-96
344.9.2 H.R.Diwakar, "Bhāmaha, Bhaṭṭī and Dharmakīrti", JRAS 1929, 825-842
344.9.3 K.B.Pathak, "Dharmakīrti and Bhāmaha", ABORI 12,1933, 372-395
344.9.4 K.B.Pathak, "Dharmakirti's trilakṣaṇahetu attacked by Pātrakeśari and defended by Śāntarakṣita", ABORI 12, 1930, 71-80
344.9.5 Vidhusekhara Bhattacarya, "Śaṃkarācārya and Dharmakīrti", IHQ 9, 1933, 979-980
344.9.6 Two Latvian Budhist priests, "Śrī Dharmakīrti, the Indian Kant", MB 49, 1941, 279-286
344.9.7 Erich Frauwallner, "Die Reihenfolge und Entstehung der Werke Dharmakīrti's", Asiatica 142-154
344.9.8 Sivaprasad Bhattacharya, "The neo-Buddhist nucleus in Alaṃkāraśāstra", JAS 22.1, 1956
344.9.9 Satkari Mookerjee, "The criterion of valid knowledge in Dharmakīrti's epistemology", JUBihar 2, 1956, 87-105
344.9.10 Shoren Ihara, "Dharmakīrti's critics on sphoṭa-theory", NBKN 26, 1961, 175-194
344.9.11 K.Kunjunni Raja, "Maṇḍana and Dharmakīrti", EPM 249-251. Reprinted in Rajasudha 80-84
344.9.12 Mithileswar Prasad, "Classification of Dharmakīrti's works", Herald of Library Science 3, 1964, 20-22
344.9.13 Someshwar Prasad, "Nature of knowledge according to Dharmakīrti", NUJ 16, 1964, 68-75
344.9.14 Nagin J. Shah, Akalaṅka's Criticism of Dharmakīrti's Philosophy. Ahmedabad 1967
344.9.15 Ernst Steinkellner, "Die Entwicklung des Kṣaṇikatvānumānam bei Dharmakīrti", WZKSOA 12-13, 1968-69, 361-378
344.9.16 Hemanta Kumar Ganguly, "Dharmakīrti and his disciples on the notion of causality", Our Heritage Special Number. CalSktCol 150th Anniversary 1824-1974, Calcutta 1979, 313-328
344.9.16.1 Christine Mullikin Keyt, Dharmakīrti's Concept of the Svalakṣaṇa. Ph.D.Thesis, University of Washington 1980
344.9.17 Ernst Steinkellner, "On the interpretation of the svabhāvahetu", WZKSOA 18, 1984, 117-130
344.9.18 Karunesh Shukla, "Dharmakīrti and Īśvarasiddhi--a review", Rtam 2-6, 1975, 165-174
344.9.19 Friedrich V. Lustig, "The great guru Dharmakīrti", MB 83, 1975, 368-370
344.9.20 Leonard Zwilling, "Some aspects of Dharmakīrti's ontology reconsidered", Kailash 3, 1975, 303-313
344.9.21 Manoranjan Shastri, "Traditions about the birthplace of Kumārilabhaṭṭa and Dharmakīrti", JUG 28-29, 1977-78, 65-76
344.9.22 Ernst Steinkellner, Verse-Index to Dharmakīrti's Works (Tibetan Versions). Wien 1977
344.9.23 Charlene McDermott, "Yogic direct awareness as means of valid cognition in Dharmakīrti and Rgyal-tshab", MBMTP 144-166
344.9.24 Shoryu Katsura, "Dharmakīrti's theory of truth", TICOJ 26, 1981, 98-99; also JIP 12, 1984, 215-235. Reprinted IPE 1, 99-120
344.9.25 Takashi Iwata, "Bemerkung zur Sahopalambhaniyama-Schlussfolgerung Dharmakīrtis und seiner Kommentatoren", JIBSt 30.1, 1981, 486-493
344.9.26 Brendon S. Gillon and Richard P. Hayes, "The role of the particle eva in (logical) quantification in Sanskrit", WZKSOA 26, 1982, 195-204
344.9.27 V.N.Jha, "Dharmakīrti on relations", PAIOC 31, 1984, 345-351. Reprinted SILLE 110-117
344.9.28 Lata Bapat, "Dharmakīrti on trairūpya and trirūpaliṅga", IPQ 11.3, 1984, 9-18
344.9.29 Takashi Iwata, "One interpretation of the saṃvedana-inference of Dharmakīrti", JIBSt 33.1, 1984, 19-22
344.9.30 Brendon S. Gillon, "Dharmakīrti and his theory of inference", BLE 77-88
344.9.31 Michael Torsten Much, "Dharmakīrti's definition of 'points of defeat' (nigrahasthāna)", BLE 133-142
344.9.32 Shoryu Katsura, "Svabhāvapratibandha revisited", JIBSt 35.1, 1986, 26-29
344.9.32.1 M. R. Chinchore, "Dharmakīrti on the distinction between svārthānumāna and parārthānumāna", DM 3-4, 1986-87, 33-41
344.9.33 Eli Franco, "Once again on Dharmakīrti's deviation from Dignāga on pratyakṣābhāsa", JIP 14, 1986,79-98
344.9.34 Kisor Kumar Chakrabarti, "The svabhāvahetu in Dharmakīrti's logic", PEW 37, 1987, 392-401
344.9.34.5 M.P.Marathe, "Dharmakīti on dṛṣṭānta", SramV 65-80
344.9.35 Stephen H. Phillips, "Dharmakīrti on sensation and causal efficiency", JIP 15, 1987, 231-260
344.9.36 H.G.A.van Zeyst, "Dharmakīrti (1)", EnBud 4.4, 1987, 531-533
344.9.37 Tadashi Tani, "Dharmakīrti's interpretation of antinomic indicators (viruddhavyabhicārin)", JIBSt 36.1, 1987, 1-10
344.9.38 Kazuhiko Yamamoto, "'Nonerroneous' in Dharmakīrti's definition of perception", JIBSt 36.1, 1987, 14-18
344.9.39 Toru Furayama, "Bhāva and svabhāva in Dharmakīrti", JIBSt 36.2, 1988, 16-19
344.9.39.1 Ernst Steinkellner, "Remarks on niścitagrahaṇa", OITMD 3, 1988, 1427-1444
344.9.40 Lata Bapat, Buddhist Logic: A Fresh Study of Dharmakīrti's Philosophy. Delhi 1989
344.9.40.1 Kamaleswar Bhattacharya, "Marginal notes on antarvyāpti", StBudEp 1-2
344.9.41 Lata Bapat, "Dharmakīrti on kinds of anumāna", ABORI 69, 1989, 51-61
344.9.42 Mangala R. Chinchore, Dharmakīrti's Theory of Hetu-Centricity of Anumāna. Delhi 1989
344.9.43 Mangala R. Chinchore, "Dharmakīrti on criteria of knowledge", IndPQ16, 1989, 319-344. Also Tulku 72-74
344.9.43.0 Bimal Matilal, "Dharmakīrti and the universally negative inference", StBudEp 161-168. (Same as BL73.2)
344.9.43.1 Seitetsu Moriyama, "The later Mādhyamika and Dharmakīrti", StBudEp 199- 210
344.9.43.2 Claus Oetke, "Svabhāvapratibandha and the types of reasons in Dharmakīrti's theory of inference", StBudEp 243-268
344.9.43.3 Tadashi Tani, "Logic and time-ness in Dharmakīrti's philosophy -hypothetical; negative reasoning (prasaṅga) and momentary existence (kṣaṇikatva)", StBudEp 325-401
344.9.43.4 Alex Wayman, "Dharmakīrti and the Yogācāra theory of bīja", StBudEp 419-430
344.9.44 Jonardon Ganeri, "Dharmakīrti on inference and properties", JIP 18, 1990, 237-248
344.9.45 Arindam Chakrabarti, "On the purported inseparability of blue and the awareness of blue: an examination of sahopalambhaniyama", Tulku 17-36
344.9.46 Rita Gupta, "Dharmakīrti's theory of language", Tulku 79-103
344.9.47 Ernst Steinkellner, "Is Dharmakīrti a Mādhyamika?", 7WSC2 72-89
344.9.47.0 George Bernard Jacques Dreyfus, Ontology, Philosophy of Language, and Epistemology in Buddhist Tradition: A Study of Dharmakīrti's Philosophy in the Light of its Reception in the Later Indo-Tibetan Tradition. Ph.D.Thesis, University of Virginia 1991
344.9.47.1 Chr. Lindtner, "On the date of Dharmakīrti", ALB 56, 1992, 56-62
344.9.47.3 Karunedh Shukla, "Some remarks on the metaphysical approaches of DharmakĪrti, Kumārila and Śaṃkara", SPP 22-23, 1992-93, 65-71
344.9.48.M. Simakov, "Truth false asymmetry in the logic of Dharmakīrti", IndPQ 19, 1992, 66-67
344.9.48.2 Richard P. Hayes, "Dharmakīrti on punarbhava", in Egaku Maeda (ed.), Studies in Original Buddhism and Mahāyāna Buddhism (Kyoto 1993). Volume One, pp. 111-130
344.9.48.5 Takashi Iwata, Prasanga und prasangaviparyaya bei Dharmakirti und seine;m Kommentatoren. WZTB heft 31, Wien 1993. Reviewed by Tadashi Tani in IIJ 44, 2000, 361-364
344.9.49 Shoryu Katsura, "On perceptual judgment", SBWarder 66-75
344.9.50 Lata Bapat, "Theory of apoha and its signiifcance in Dharmakīrti's philosophy", ABORI 74, 1994, 191-202
344.9.50.1 Georges Dreyfus, "Is Dharmakīrti a pragmatist?", AS 49, 1995, 671-692
344.9.51.Tom J.F. Tillemans, "Dharmakīrti and Tibetans on adarśānupalabdhi-hetu", JIP 23, 1995, 129-149. Reprinted SLL 151-170
344.9.52 Georges Dreyfus, "Can the fool lead the blind? Perception and the given in Dharmakīrti's thought", JIP 24, 1996, 209-229
344.9.52.5 V. N. Jha, "Dharmakīrti's concept of pramāṇa", BudIA 1996, 146-156. Also Srijnanamrtam 395-401
344.9.52.7 Ernst Steinkellner, "An explanation of Dharmakīrti's svabhāvahetu definitions", FDS 257-268
344.9.53 Georges B. Dreyfus, Recognizing Reality. Dharmakīrti's Philosophy and its Tibetan Interpretations. Albany, N.Y. 1997
344.9.53.1 George Dreyfus, "Perception and apperception in Tibetan Buddhist epistemology", TibSt 237-252
344.9.55 Richard P. Hayes, "Whose experience validates what for Dharmakīrti?", RSB 1997, 105-118
344.9.56 Tom J.F. Tillemans, "Dharmakirti on prasiddha and yogyata", BonnOS 4 177-194
344.9.57 Wilhelm Halbfass, "Arthakriyā und kṣaṇikatva: einige beobahtungen", BVSK 233-247
344.9.57.5 Manoranjan Sastri, "Traditions about the birthplace of Kumāriulabhaṭṭa and Dharmakīrti", JUG 39, 1997, 65-76
344.9.58 Masahiro Inami, "On the determination of causality", DTI 131-154
344.9.59 Toshihiko Kimura, "A new chronology of Dharmakīrti", DTI 209-214
344.9.60 Helmut Krasser, "Dharmakīrti's and Kumārila's refutations of the existence of God: a consideration of their chronological order", DTI 215-223
344.9.61 Horst Lasic, "Dharmakīrti and his successors on the determination of causality", DTI 233-242
344.9.63 Futoshi Omae, "Dharmakīrti as a varṇavādin", DTI 295-300
344.9.64 Motoi Ono, "Dharmakīrti on asādhāraṇānaikāntika", DTI 301-315
344.9.66 Ernst Steinkellner, "Yogic cognition, tantric goal, and other methodological applications of Dharmakīrti's kāryānumāna theory", DTI 349-362
344.9.68 Alex Wayman, "Does the Buddhist 'momentary' theory preclude anything permanent?", DTI 433-439
344.9.99 Rita Gupta, "Does Dharmakīrti embrace a pragmatic theory of truth in his theory of knowledge?", JICPR 16.1, 1998, 93-108
344.9.102 Karunesh Shukla, "Philosophical background of Dharmakirti's works", BudCompL 276-305
344.9.103 Vincent Eltschinger, Dharmakīrti sur les mantra et la perception du supra-sensible. WSTB 51. Wien 2001
344.9.103.5 John Dunne, "Dharmakīrti", EnB 1, 2001, 225
344.9.104 Eli Franco, "Dharmakīrti's reductionism in religion and logic", LPEIM 285-308
344.9.105 Raghunath Ghose, Relation as Real: A Critique of Dharmakirti. Delhi 2001
344.9.105.5 Harjeet Singh Gill, "Dharmakīrti and Abelard: Buddhist apohavāda and Abelardian conceptualism", SBFT 287-59
349.9.106 Birgit Kellner, "Negation–failure or success? Remarks on an allegedly characteristic trait of Dharmakīrti's anupalabdhi-theory", JIP 29, 2001, 495-517
344.9.107 Helmut Krasser, "On Dharmakirti's understanding of pramāṇabhūta and his definition of pramāna", WZKSOA 45, 2001, 173-200
344.9.110 John Taber, "Much ado about noting: Kumarila, Santaraksita and Dharmakirti on the cognition of non-being", JAOS 121, 2001, 72-88
344.9.115 Vincent Eltschinger, "Dharmakirtis critique de la theorie du sphoṭa", AS 55, 2002, 243-290
344.9.116 H. S. Gill, "Conceptualis in Buddhst and French traditions", SLC 195-232
344.9.117 Rajendra Prasad, Dharmakīti's Theory of Inference: Revaluation and Reconstruction. Oxford; New Delhi 2002
344.9.120 Takashi Iwata, "An interpretation of Dharmakīti's svabhāvahetu", JIP 31, 2003, 61-87
344.9.122 Birgit Kellner, "Inetgrating negative knowledge on to pramāṇa theory: the development of the dṛṣyānupalabdhi in Dharmakīrti's earlier works", JIP 31, 2003, 121-159
344.9.123 Horst Lasic, "On the utilisation of causality as a basis of inference. Dharmakīrti's statements and their interpretation", JIP 31, 2003, 185-197
344.9.123.3 John D. Dunne, Foundations of Dharmakīrti's Philosophy. Boston 2004
344.9.123.7 Masamichi Sakai, "Dharmakīrti on viruddhavyāptopalabadhi and kṣaṇiktvānumāna", JIBSt 53.1, 2004, 8-10
344.9.124 Karma Phuntsho, "Shifting boundaries: pramāṇa and ontology in Dharmakīrti's epistemology", JIP 33, 2005, 401-419
344.9.125 Amit Kumar Sen, "Inference: Dharmakīrti and Hempel", IndPQ 30, 2003, 569-574
344.9.126 John Taber, "Dharmakīrti against physicalism", JIP 31, 2003, 479-502
344.9.129 Jeson Woo, "Dharmakīrti and his commentators on yogipratyakṣa", JIP 31, 2003, 439-448
344.9.134 Chris Mortensen, "Dharmakīrti and Priest on change", PEW 54, 2004, 20-28
349.9.137 Chizuko Yoshimizu, "Defining and redefining svalakṣaṇa: Dharmakīrti's concept and its Tibetan modification", TMSR 117-134
349.9.139 Mangala R. Chinchore, "Some distinctive features of Dharmakīrti's logic", IndPQ 32, 2005, 285-298
344.9.140 Vincent Eltschinger, "Recherches sur le philosophie relilgieuse de Dharmakīrti. I.Le Bauddha comme śāstṛ et comme sugata", AS 59, 2005, 395-442
344.9.141 Vincent Eltschinger, "Etude sur le philosophe de Dharmakīrti (II). L'āśrayaparivṛtti", JA 293, 2005, 151-211
344.9.144 Taiken Kyuma, "On Dharmakīrti's proof of the existence of external objects", JIBSt 53.2, 2005, 31-37
344.9.145 Sushma Singhvi, "Dharmakīrti: the advocate of bāhyārtha-astitvavāda", EnIW2 157-167
344.9.147 Karma Phuntsha, "Shifting boundaries" pramāṇa and ontology in Dharmakīrti's epistemology", JIP 33, 2005, 401-419
344.9.150 Johon D. Dunne, "Realizing the unreal–Dharmakīrti's theory of yogic perception", JIP 34, 2006, 497-520
344.9.152 Richard P. Hayes, "Dharmakiṛti", EnBuddhism 283-284
344.9.152.5 Georges Dreyfus, "Is perception intentional? A preliminary exploraito of intentionality in Dharmakīrti", Pramanakirti 95-114
344.9.153 Koji Tanaka, "Dharmakīrti and Priest on an inconsistent theory of change–a comment on Mortensen", PEW 57, 2007. Reply by Mortenson; reply by Tanaka
345.Author Unknown (640)
1.Jñānakadhāraṇīsūtra (T.1397-1398)
346-348.(unassigned)
349.Author Unknown (645)
1.Anityatāsūtra (T.758, 801)
350.Author Unknown (645)
1.Bhadrakāratrisūtra (T.1362)
351.Śākyayaśas (645)
1.Hastadaṇḍaśāstra
352.Samantabhadra (650)
1.Jinaśatālaṃkāra (Jain)(NCat VII, 270-271)
2.Jīvasiddhi (Jain)(NCat VII, 296)
3.Gandhahastimahābhāṣya on Umāsvāti's Tattvārthasūtra (NCat V, 309; VIII, 79-80)
352.3.1 Āptamīmāṃsā (or Devāgamastotra) section edited, with Vasunandin Siddhāntika's Devāgamavṛtti, by Pannalal and Vamsidhara. SJGM 1, 1905
352.3.2 Āptamīmāṃsā edited, with Bhaṭṭa Akalaṅka's Aṣṭasatī and Vidyānanda's Āptaparīkṣā, by Gajadharalal Jain. SJGM 7-8, 1914
352.3.3 Āptamīmāṃsā edited, with Bhaṭṭa Akalaṅka's Aṣṭasatī, Vidyānanda's Aṣṭasāhasrī and Laghusamantabhadra's Viṣamatātparya, by Vamsidhara. Bombay 1915
352.3.4 Āptamīmāṃsā edited by Jayacandra. Bombay 1923
352.3.5 Āptamīmāṃsā edited, with Samantabhadra's Yuktyanuśāsana, in SS
352.3.6 Āptamīmāṃsā edited, with Bhaṭṭa Akalaṅka's Aṣṭasatī, Vidyānanda's Aṣṭasāhasrī, and Yaśovijaya's Tātparyanirṇaya. Ahmedabad 1937
352.3.6.1 Edited with editor's Tattvadipika by Udaya Chandraq Jain. Varanasi 1975
352.3.6.2 Edited by Acarya Vidyasagara. Varanasi 1985
352.3.7 Āptamīmāṃsā edited by Jugal Kishore Mukhtar. Varanasi 1978; Sonagira Datiya 1989
352.3.8 Aptamimamsa edited and translated, with an edition of Akalanka's Astasati by Nagin J. Shah. Ahmedabad 1999
352.3.10 Āptamīmāṃsā edited by Sarathchandra Ghoshal. Nde Delhi 2002
352.3.12 Summarized by K.H.Potter. EnIndPh10, 2007, 140-154
4.Yuktyanuśāsana (Jain)
See e352.3.5
352.4.1 Edited by Pannalal and Vamsidhara. SJGM 1, 1905
352.4.2 Edited, with Vidyānanda's Ṭīkā, by Indralala and Srilala. MDJG 25, 1919
352.4.6 Summarized by Ratna Lahiri. EnIndPh10, 2007, 154-158
5.General
352.5.1 K.B.Pathak, "Śāntarakṣita's reference to Kumārila's attacks on Samantabhadra and Akalaṅkadeva", ABORI 11.2, 1929, 155-164
352.5.2 K.B.Pathak, "On the date of Samantabhadra", ABORI 11, 1929, 149-154
352.5.3 Jagalkishor Mukhtar, "Samantabhadra's date and Dr. Pathak", ABORI 15, 1933-34, 67-88
352.5.4 D.G.Mahajan, "Āchārya Samantabhadra and Pāṭaliputra", JainA 14, 1948, 36-43
352.5.5 Daya Krishna, "Advaita before Śaṃkara: a discussion by Samantabhadra", JICPR 15.3, 1998, 144-146
352.5.6 Fujinage Sin, "Determining which Jaina philosopher was the object of Dharmakīrti's criticisms", PEW 50, 2000, 378-384
353.Jayarāśi (650)
1.Tattvopaplavasiṃha (Cārvāka) (NCat VIII, 83)
See a47.16.165; 494.2.7. a655.1.14
353.1.1 Edited by Sukhlal Sanghvi and R.C. Parikh. GOS 87, 1940. Reprinted Varanasi 1987. Introduction reprinted CL 492-504
353.1.2 Janakivallabha Bhattacharya, "Jayarāśi's refutation of some indirect proofs of the soul as offered by the different systems of Indian philosophy", CR 120, 1951, 155-175
353.1.3 R.C.Parikh, "A neglected work of philosophy in Sanskrit", PAIOC 17, Summaries 1953, 376-378
353.1.4 Partly translated by S.N.Shastri and S.K.Saksena and revised by Satischandra Chatterjee in Source Book 236-246
353.1.5 Walter Ruben, "Über den Tattvopaplavasiṃha des Jayarāśi Bhaṭṭa, eine agnostizistische Erkenntniskritik", WZKSOA 2, 1958, 140-153
353.1.6 K.K.Dixit, "The ideological affiliation of Jayarāśi, the author of the Tattvopaplavasiṃha", ISPP 4.1, 1962, 98-104. Reprinted CL 520-530
353.1.7 Walter Ruben, "On the Tattvopaplavasiṃha of Jayarāśi Bhaṭṭa", ISPP 7, 1965, 53-64. Reprinted CL 505-519
353.1.8 Pradeep P. Gokhale, "The philosophical position of Jayarāśibhaṭṭa", IndPQ 5, 1977-78, 489-498
353.1.9 Eli Franco, "Studies in the Tattvopaplavasiṃha", JIP 11, 1983, 147-166; 12, 1984, 105-137
353.1.10 First section translated in Eli Franco, Perception, Knowledge and Disbelief: a Study of Jayarāśi's Skepticism. Stuttgart 1987 Second edition, with most of the remainder translated, Delhi 1994.
353.1.11 Dilip Mohanta, "A note on Jayarāśibhaṭṭa's philosophical method", VJP 23.1, 1986, 133-138
353.1.11.1 J.M.Shukla, "Jayarāśi's criticism of verbal testimony", AspJ 2, 57-69
353.1.12 Dilipkumara Mohanta, "Is Jayarāśi a materialist?", IndPQ, Student's Supplement 16.3, 1989, 1-4
353.1.13 D.K.Mohanta, "A critique of Jayarāśi's critique of perception", IndPQ 17, 1990, 285-312
353.1.18 See DKM 53-88
353.1,22 Dilipkumar Mohanta, "Reflections of Jayarāśi Bhaṭṭa's philosophical positions", JIAP 41, 2002, 18-48
353A.Campantar (650?)
1.Tirujñānasambandhar
353A.1.1 V. K. S.N.Raghavan, "The Tiruvelukurrirukkai. A comparative study of the Tiruvelukarokkai of Tirumangai Alvar and the of Tirujnanasambandhar", IPQ 18, 1985-86, 265-298
353A.1.2 P. S. Somasundaran, Tirujñānasambandhar: Philosophy and Religion. Madras 1986
354.Avalokitavrata (650)
1.Ṭīkā on Bhāvaviveka's Prajñāpradīpa
355.(Hari)Vṛṣabhadeva (650)
1.Paddhati on Bhartṛhari's Vākyapadīya
See e221.1:12,60.1,67
355.1.1 Selections translated in HTR 237-238
357.Author Unknown (650)
1.Akṣayamatiparipṛcchāsūtra (T.310(45))
357.1.1 Translated in Treasury 415-424
359.Author Unknown (650)
1.Gaṅgottaraparipṛcchāsūtra (T.310(31); Toh. 75)
359.1.1 Translated Treasury 37-40
361.Author Unknown (650)
1.Vairocanābhisambodhisūtra
362.Brahmadatta (660)
1.General
362.1.1 Mysore Hiriyanna, "Brahmadatta: an old Vedāntin", JOR 2, 1928, 1-9. Also PAIOC 4, 1926, 787-798. Reprinted IPS 2, 17-25
362.1.2 Mysore Hiriyanna, "Two old Vedāntins", IPS 2, 101-111
363.Kumārila (660)
1.Ślokavārttika on Śabara's Mīmāṃsāsūtrabhāṣya
See a342.1.3. e22.1:6,15,37,54,81.1; 174.6.11; 344.9.47.3; e198.1.18. t22.1:16,25
363.1.0 Edited by Rama Sastri Tailanga (Manavalli). Chowkhamba. Varanasi 1891.
363.1.1 N. Aiyasvami (Sastri), "The maṅgalaśloka of the Ślokavārttika", IHQ 1, 1925, 759-760
363.1.2 Edited from ākṛti section to the end, with Bhaṭṭaputra Jayamiśra's Śarkarikā, by C.Kunhan Raja. MUSS 17, 1946
363.1.3 Shoren Ihara, "Brahmasiddhi and Ślokavārttika", JIBSt 22, 1963, 829-833
363.1.4 Tsugihiko Yamasaki, "The conception of svataḥ-prāmāṇya in the Mīmāṃsāślokavārttika", JIBSt 11.1, 1963, 32-37
363.1.5 Franis Xavier D'Sa, Kumārila's Theorie der Worterkenntnis Śabdaprāmāṇyam. Ph.D.Thesis, University of Vienna, 1973
363.1.6 Francis X. D'Sa, "Offenbarung ohne eine Gott, Kumārila's Theorie der Worterkenntnis", Offenbarung 93-106
363.1.7 Vijaya Rani, "Nature of cognition according to the Buddhist, with special reference to Mīmāṃsā-Ślokavārttika", KUJ 9, 1975, 230-233
363.1.8 Selections translated in HTR 89-94
363.1.9 Tomoyasu Takenaka, "Sāmānya, sārūpya and sādṛśya. Kumārila's criticism of the similarity theory (Ślokavārttika Ākṛtivāda, kk. 65 cd. ff)", JIBSt 26.1, 1977, 7-12
363.1.10 Edited, with Pārthasārathi Miśra's Nyāyaratnākara, by Dvarikadasa Sastri. PBS 10, 1978
363.1.11 Selections edited, with selections from Tantravārttika, in Peri Sarvesvara Sharma, Anthology of Kumārila Bhaṭṭa's Works. Delhi 1980
363.1.12 Vijaya Rani, The Buddhist Philosophy as presented in Mīmāṃsā-Śloka-Vārttika. Delhi 1982
363.1.13 K.K.Dixit, Ślokavārttika. A Study. LDS 92, 1983
363.1.14 Govardhan P. Bhatt, The Basic Ways of Knowing: An In-Depth Study of Kumārila's Contribution to Indian Epistemology. Delhi 1989
363.1.14.1 Citrarekha V.Kher, "Buddhism as presented by Kumārila in the Ślokavārttika", BPBS 357-454
363.1.15 Michiya Kawajiri, "Ślokavārttika-Sphoṭavāda vv. 5-9 and Sphoṭasiddhi v. 3", JIBSt 42.2, 1994, 14-16
363.1.16 John A. Taber, "Kumārila's refutation of the dreaming argument in the nirālambanavāda-adhikaraṇa", StudinM 27-52
363.1.16.5 Lars Gohler, Wort und Text bei Kumārila Bhaṭṭa: Studie zur mittelalterlichen indischen Sprachphilosophie und Hermeneutik. Frankfurt-am-Main 1995
363.1.17 Amita Chatterjee, "Kumārila's refutation of the argument from illusion", EssInP 279-296
363.1.18 Ujjwala Panse Jha, "Kumārila Bhaṭṭa on 'yogic perception'", JICPR 15.3, 1998, 69-78
363.1.22 Chapter on pratyaksa edited and translated by John Taber, A Hindu Critique of Buddhist Epistemology. Kumārila on Perception. London 2005
363.1.25 Kiyotaka Yoshimizu, "Reconsidering the fragment of the Bṛhaṭṭīkā on inseparable connection (avinābhāva)", Pramanakirti 1079-1103
2.Tantravārttika on Śabara's Mīmāṃsāsūtrabhāṣya I.2 through III
(NCat VIII, 93-94)
See e22.1:6,8,41,48,74,87,89.1. e363.1.11. t22.1.20
363.2.1 A.C.Burnell, "An interesting passage in Kumārila Bhaṭṭa's Tantravārttika", IA 1, 1872, 309-311
363.2.2 P.V.Kane, "The Tantravārttika and the Dharmaśāstra literature", JASBo n.s. 1, 1925, 95-102
363.2.3 Edited with Someśvara's Nyāsudhā and Mahāprabhulāl Gosvāmi's Bhāvaprakāśikā. Varanasi 1984
363.2.6 Kiyotaka Yoshimizu, "The theorem of the singleness of a goblet (graha-ekatva-nyāya)-a Mīmāṃsā analysis of meaning and context", Acta Asiatica 90, 2006, 15-38
3.Ṭupṭīkā on Śabara's Mīmāṃsāsūtrabhāṣya IV-XII (NCat VIII, 2)
See e22.1:21,41,44,74
4.Bṛhaṭṭīkā on Śabara's Mīmāṃsaśāśtrabhāṣya
363.4.1 K.S.Ramaswami Sastri and K.A.Sankaran, "Kumārila and the Bṛhaṭṭīkā", PAIOC 3, 1924, 523-530
363.4.2 Erich Frauwallner, "Kumārila's Bṛhaṭṭīkā", WZKSOA 6, 1962, 78-98
363.4.3 John A. Taber, "Further observations on Kumārila's Bṛhaṭṭīkā", JOR 41-42, 1986-92, 179-189
5.General
See a221.1:5,167.2; 268.10.1; 344.9.21, 57.5, 60, 110; 352.5.1; H3633
363.5.1 K.B.Pathak, "The position of Kumārila in Digambara Jaina literature", CIDO 9.1, 1893, 186-214
363.5.2 P.T.Srinivas Iyengar, "Kumārila's acquaintance with Tamil", IA 42, 1913, 200-201
363.5.3 Emil Abegg, "Die Lehre der Ewigkeit des Wortes bei Kumārila", Festschrift Wackneragel (1923), 255-264
363.5.5 A.Chinnasvami Sastri, "Kumārila and Prabhākara", PAIOC 4.1, Summaries 1926, 64-65
363.5.6 K.S.Ramaswami Sastri, "Forgotten kārikās of Kumārila", JOR 1, 1927, 101-144. Summarized in PAIOC 4.1, 1926, 81-84
363.5.7 A.Chinnasvami Sastri, "Kumārila and Prabhākara Miśra", JOR 1, 1927, 203-210
363.5.8 K.B.Pathak, "Kumārila's verses attacking the Jain (and?) Buddhist notions of an omniscient being", ABORI 12, 1930, 123-131
363.5.9 Ganganatha Jha, "Kumārila and Vedānta", JASBo n.s. 6, 1930, 228-230
363.5.10 J.Samkhyatirtha, "Kumārila's conception of soul", PQ 6, 1930, 30-56
363.5.11 K.B.Pathak, "Milestones of Indian chronology: 2.Bhavabhūti and Kumārila", COJ 1, 1933-34, 327-343
363.5.12 S.K.Saksena, "Svapramāṇatva and svaprakāśatva: an inconsistency in Kumārila's philosophy", RPR 9.11, 1940, 27-32. Also PQ 16, 1940-41, 192-198. Reprinted in SSEIP 77-81
363.5.13 G.P.Bhatt, "Kumārila's theory of intrinsic validity (a justification)", PB 62, 1957, 388-392
363.5.15 Rajagopala Sastri, "Kumārila Bhaṭṭa", VK 49, 1962-63, 65-69
363.5.16 Fritz Zangenberg, "Once more--Prabhākara and Kumārilaḥ", CIDO 26, 1969, 504-508
363.5.17 K.V.Subbaratnam, "Where did Kumārila and Śaṃkara meet?", Srngeri Souvenir 1970, 61-63
363.5.18 C.D.Bijelwan, "Critique of Kumārila's theory of śrutārthāpatti", JGJRI 29, 1973, 159-172
363.5.18.0 John Taber, "The significance of Kumarila's philosophy", BOr 373-394. Reprinted IPR 5, 113-134
363.5.18.1 Shiv Kumar, "Kumārilabhaṭṭa's critique of the Sāṃkhya-concept of the test of the validity of knowledge", CASSt 4, 1978, 103-107
363.5.19 K.Kunjunni Raja, "Kumārilabhaṭṭa on the Dravidian language", AOR 28, 1978. Reprinted in Rajasudha 209-218
363.5.20 K.S.Ramaswami Sastri, "Kumārila Bhaṭṭa", VRPRL 79-83
363.5.21 Vachaspati Upadhyaya, "Kumārila Bhaṭṭa--his date, place and works", CIS 177-184
363.5.22 Wilhelm Rau, Anthology of Kumārila Bhaṭṭa's Works. Delhi 1980
363.5.23 Wilhelm Halbfass, Studies in Kumārila and Śaṃkara. Studien zur Indologie und Iranistik, Monographie 9, Reinbek 1983
363.5.24 Masaaki Hattori, "Kumārila's theory on the meaning of the sentence (vākyārtha): preliminary notes (in Japanese with English summary). TK 67.8, 1984, 200-206
363.5.25 K.L.Sharma, "Kumārila and Prabhākara's understanding of actions", IPQ 11, 1984-85, 119-130
363.5.26 Vachaspati Upadhyaya, "Kumārila's critique of the theory of apoha", SIRVJ 231-234
363.5.27 Roque Mesquita, "Der idee der erlösung bei Kumārilabhaṭṭa", WZKSOA 38, 1994, 451-484
363.5.28 R. Thiagarajan, "Śaṃkara and Kumārila", TL 17.1, 1994, 32-35
363.5.29 P. Sri Rachandrudu, "Kumārila Bhaṭṭa on the prayojana of vyākaraṇa", StudInM 243-256
363.5.30 Lars Gøhler, "The concept of truth in Kumārila Bhaṭṭa and K.R.Popper: a comparison", StudinM 79-86
363.5.31 Peri Sarveswar Sharma, "Kumārila Bhaṭṭa's denial of creation and dissolution of the world", StudinM 57-78
363.5.32 John Taber, "What did Kumārila Bhaṭṭa mean by svataḥ prāmāṇya?", JAOS 112, 1992, 204-221
363.5.32.0 Biswanarayan Shastri, Mīmāṃsā Theory and Kumārila Bhaṭṭa. New Delhi 1995
363.5.32.1 S.N.Roy, "Historical analysis of purāṇa passages quoted by Kumārila and Śaṃkara", JGJRI 52-53, 1996-97, 17-20
363.5.32.3 Lars Godler, "Vedische Weisung: Was Verstand Kumāila Bhaṭṭa unter einer Vedisches Weisung (codanā)", IndBeyond 162-169
363.5.32.5 Kunio Harikai, "Kumārila's acceptance and modificaiton of categories of the Vaiśeṣika school", BOr 395-416
363.5.32.7 John Taber, "The significance of Kumārila's philosophy", BOr 373-394
363.5.33 Tomoyuki Uno, "The soul (ātman) and agency (kartṛtva) according to Kumārila Bhaṭṭa and his followers", JIBSt 46.1, 1997, 8-12
363.5.35 Tomoyuki Uno, "Ontological affinity between the Jainas and the Mīmāṃsakas by Buddhist Logicians", DTI 419-431
363.5.38 Johannes Bronkhorst, "Mīmāṃsā versus Vaiśeṣika: Parthasārathi and Kumārila on the creation and dissolution of the world", LPEIM 171-182
363.5.40 Kei Kataoka, "Scripture, man and heaven: causal structure in Kumarila's action theory of bhavana", JIBSt 49.2 2001, 10-13
363.5.42 Mohini Mullick, "Kumārila against relativism", JICPR 18.2, 2001, 206-210
363.5.45 Kiyotaka Yoshimizu, "Notes on Kumārila's approach to the ritual scripture", TMSR 735-751
363.5.50 Parimal G. Patil, "Consuming scripture: philosophical hermeneutics in classical India", CTCIP 47-60
363.5.55 John Taber, "Kumārila the Vedāntin?", MVIC 159-184
363.5.60 Kiyaoka Yoshimizu, "Kumārila's reevaluation of the sacrifice and the Veda from the Vedānta perspective", MVIC 201-254
363.5.61 Sugura Ishimura, "Kumārila's theory of the intrinsic validity of knowledge (svatah-pāriṇāma), JIBSt 55.3, 2007, 136-187
363.5.62 Kiyotaka Yoshimizu, "Kumārila's propositional derivation (arthāpatti) without pervasion (vyāpti)", EMH 315-336
363.5.63 Kiyotaka Yoshimizu, "Verbal denotation and context of the Vedic prohibition of untruth", JIBSt 55.3, 2007, 237-238
363.5.65 Elisa Freschi, "Abhāvapramāṇa and error in Kumārila's commentators", Sambhasa 27, 2008, 1-30
363.5.67 Kiyotaka Yoshimizu, "The intention of expression (vivakṣā), the expounding (vyākhyā) of a text, and the authorlessness of the Veda", ZDMG 58.1, 2008, 57-72
364.Pṛthvībandhu (670) (NCat XII, 193)
1.Bhāṣya on Vasubandhu's Pañcaskandha (Cordier III, 388)
2.Commentary on the Saddharmapuṇḍarīkasūtra (Cordier III, 372)
365.Devendrabuddhi (670)
1.Pañjikā on Dharmakīrti's Pramāṇavārttika (NCat IX, 159)
365.1.1 Erich Frauwallner, "Devendrabuddhi", WZKSOA 4, 1960, 119-123
366.Author Unknown (675)
1.Yuktidīpikā on Īśvarakṛṣṇa's Sāṃkhyakārikās
See a175.1.81. e163.1:46.1, 67, 77. t163.1.99
366.1.2 F.M.Nowotny-Pedain, Die Sāṃkhya-Philosophie auf Grund der Yuktidīpikā und der Fragmente der Werke alter Sāṃkhya-Lehrer. Dissertation, Wien 1941
366.1.3 V. Raghavan, "The Yuktidīpikā on Sāṃkhyakārikā: Corrections and emendations in the text", AOR 12, 1954-55 - 15. II, 1958-59
366.1.4 Gerhard Oberhammer, "On the śāstra quotations of the Yuktidīpikā", JIBSt 26, 1955, 51-57
366.1.5 George Chemparathy, "The testimony of the Yuktidīpikā concerning the Īśvara doctrine of the Pāśupatas and Vaiśeṣikas", WZKSOA 9, 1965, 119-146
366.1.5.5 Raj Chandra Pandeya, Yuktidīpikā: an Ancient Commentary on the Sāṃkhya-kārikā. Delhi 1967
366.1.6 Naomichi Nakada, "Word and inference in the Yuktidīpikā", JIBSt 36, 1970 - 21.1, 1972. Also ZDMG Supplement 9, 1992, 485-486
366.1.7 A. Wezler, "Some observations on the Yuktidīpikā", ZDMG Supplement 18, 1974, 434-455
366.1.8 English summary of translation into Japanese by Shinkan Murakami, TDBKH 33, 1984, 37-69
366.1.9 Gerald James Larson, "The pratyaya-sarga or intellectual creation in classical Sāṃkhya as interpreted by Yuktidīpikā", RSAI 60-71
366.1.9.1 Edeltraud Harzer, Samkhya Epistemology according to the Yuktidipika. Ph.D.Thesis, U. of Washington 1986
366.1.10 Summarized by Raghunatha Sharma, Dayanand Bhargava and Shiv Kumar Sharma. Samkhya 227-270
366.1.11 Edited by Shiv Kumar and D.N.Bhargava. Two volumes. Delhi 1990, 1991
366.1.11.5 Albrecht Wezler, "Two medical verses in the Yuktidīpikā", JEAS 1, 1990, 127-148
366.1.12 Eli Franco, "Whatever happened to the Yuktidīpika", WZKSOA 25, 1991, 123-138
366.1.12.1 Citrarekha V. Kher, "Buddhism as presented in the Yuktidīpikā", BJBS 543-556
366.1.12.5 Albrecht Wezler, "On a prose passage in the Yuktidīpikof some significance for the history of Indian medicine", JEAS 3, 1993, 282-304
366.1.13.Shujun Motegi, "Some Vaiśeṣika thoughts referred to in the Yuktidīpikā", AS 48, 1994, 807-818
366.1.14 Balraj Kumar Joshi, "L'isolement libérateur (kaivalya) selon le Sāṃkhya et le lumiére de la Yuktidīpikā", L'Herme 131-137
366.1.15 Edited by Kedaranatha Tripati. Varanasi 1996
366.1.16 Mitali Chatterjee, "On the title of Yuktidipika", JASBe 39, 1997, 53-70
366.1.16.5 Ashok Aklujkar, "Vācaspati Miśra's Tattvasamīkṣā and the last two verses in Yuktidīpikā manuscripts", ALB 62, 1998, 125-166
366.1.17 Albrecht Wezler and Shujan Motagi (eds.), Yuktidipika: The Most Significant Commentary on the Samkhyakarikas. Volume One. Alt- und Neu-Indische Studien (Hamburg) 44. Stuttgart 1998
366.1.18 Marek Mejor, "Some observations on the date of the Yuktidīpikā (a propos of a new edition)", StudiaInd 7, 2000, 255-290
366.1.19 Edeltraud Harzer, The Yuktidīpikā: a Reconstruction of Sāṃkhya Methods of Knowing. Indologica Halensis 8. Aachen 2006
366.1.20 Shujun Motagi, "Śabda in the Yuktidīpikā", Acta Asiatica 90-, 2006, 39-54
366.1.22 Thomas Oberlies, "Von 'stuff' der Koper der Gotter", WZKSOA 50, 2006, 177-198
368.Śāntideva (690)
1.Bodhi(sattva)caryāvatāra (Mādhyamika)
See e174.6.11; tEFNW2. d21.1.63
368.1.1 Edited by I. Minayeff in Sap 4, 1890, 153-228
368.1.2 Chapters 1-4 and 10 translated into French by Louis de la Vallee Poussin. LM 11, 1892, 87-115
368.1.3 Edited by Haraprasad Sastri. JBTSI 2.1, 1894, 1-16; 2.2, 1894, 17-32
368.1.4 Chapter 5 translated into French by Louis de la Vallee Poussin. LM 11, 1896, 207 ff.
368.1.5 Edited, with Prajñākaragupta's Pañjikā, by Louis de la Vallee Poussin. BI 150, 1901, 1914
368.1.6 Translated into French by Louis de la Vallee Poussin. Revue d'histoire et de literature de religion 11, 1907, 430-458; 12, 1907: 59, 97, 389. Reprinted Ann arbor 1986; Paris 1993
368.1.7 Partially translated by L.D.Barnett as The Path of Light. London 1909
368.1.8 Chapter 9 edited, with Prajñākaragupta's Pañjikā, by Louis de la Vallee Poussin, in BEM
368.1.9 Translated into French by Louis Finot as La Marche à la Lumière. Paris 1920
368.1.10 Translated into German by R. Schmidt as Der Eintritt in der Wandel in Erleuchtung. Paderborn 1923
368.1.11 Translated into Italian by Giuseppe Tucci as In commino verso la luce. Torino 1925
368.1.12 Edited by Hariharananda. Calcutta 1927
368.1.12.1 Edited in Mongolian by Boris Akovlevich Vladimitsov. Leningrad 1929; Osnabruck 1970; Taipei 1984; Delhi 1992
368.1.13 F. Weller, Index zum Bodhicaryāvatāra. Two volumes. Berlin 1952, 1955
368.1.14 N.Aiyasvami Sastri, "Epitome of the Bodhicaryāvatāra with its Pañjikā", ALB 17, 1953, 36-44
368.1.15 Nicholas Poppe, "A fragment of the Bodhicaryāvatāra from Olon Sume", HJAS 17, 1954, 411-418
368.1.16 Edited by Santibhiksu Sastri. Lucknow 1955
368.1.16.1 Friedrich Weller, Zum Blockdruckfragmente des mongolischen Bodhicaryavatara der Berlin Turefnsammlung. Berlin 1955
368.1.17 K. Oedingen, "La conception de la realité dans L'Entrèe dans la voie de l'illumination de Śāntideva", translated from German into French by J. Carrere. Revue de l'histoire de philosophies et religion 38, 1958, 360-369
368.1.18 Edited, with Prajñākaragupta's Pañjikā, by P.L.Vaidya. Darbhanga 1960
368.1.19 Marion L. Matics, Bodhicitta and Bodhisattva. A Study of the Bodhicaryāvatāra of Śāntideva. Ph.D.Thesis, Columbia University 1960
368.1.20 Edited in Tibetan and Sanskrit by Vidhusekha Bhattacharya. BI 280, 1960
368.1.21 Ajitkumar Mukhopadhyaya, "An appendix to the new edition of the Bodhicaryāvatāra", IHQ 37, 1961, 287-292
368.1.22 Shuyu Kanaoka, "Regional characteristics of Mongolian Buddhism--a study on the basis of the Bodhicaryāvatāra", Bukkyo Shigaku 10.4, 1963, 15-24
368.1.23 Shuyu Kanaoka, "On the duplicated chapter of Mongolian Bodhicaryāvatāra", JIBSt 28, 1966, 825-833
368.1.24 Amalia Pezzali, "Śāntideva's statement about confession", IAHRC 1968, II 134-135
368.1.25 Translated by Marion L. Matics as Entering the Path of Enlightenment. New York 1970
368.1.26 Amarasiri Weeratne, "Bodhicaryāvatāra", MB 79, 1971, 406-409
368.1.27 D.J.Kalupahana, "Bodhicaryāvatāra", EnBud 3.2, 1972, 181-183
368.1.28 Luis O. Gomez, "Emptiness and moral perfection", PEW 23, 1973, 361-374
368.1.29 Edited in Mongolian with Tibetan commentary by Lokesh Chandra. New Delhi 1976
368.1.29.0 Chapter Ten edited in Mongollian by A. Luvsanbalden Luvsandendeva. Ulan Bator 1976
368.1.29.1 Michael Jay Sweet, Śāntideva and the Mādhyamika: The Prajñāpāramitā-pariccheda of the Bodhicaryāvatāra. Ph.D.Thesis, University of Wisconsin 1977
368.1.29.2 Sangharakshita, The Endless Fascinating Cry: An Exploration of the Bodhicaryavatara. Berkeley, Cal. 1977, 1978
368.1.30 Michael Sweet, "Bodhicaryāvatāra 9.2 as a focus for Tibetan interpretation of the two truths in the Prāsaṅgika Mādhyamika", JIABS 2.2, 1979, 79-92
368.1.31 Translated by Steven Batchelor as The Guide to the Bodhisattva's Way of Life. Dharamsala 1979, 1987, 1992
368.1.32 Geshe Kelsan Gyatso, Meaningful to Behold View, Meditation and Action in Mahāyāna Buddhism. An Oral Commentary on Shāntideva's A Guide to the Bodhisattva Way of Life (Bodhisattvacaryāvatāra). Translated by Tenzin Norbu. Cumbia, England 1980. Edited by Jonathan Landau with Jon Marshall, London 1986
368.1.33 Translated into German by Ernst Steinkellner as Eintritt in das Leben zur Erlauchtung. Dusseldorf 1981
368.1.34 Helmut Eimer, "Suvarṇadīpa's 'commentaries' on the Bodhicaryāvatāra", SzumJB 73-78
368.1.35 Heramba Chatterjee (Sastri), "A note on Mahāyāna Buddhism and the Bodhicaryāvatāra", JDPUYC 1, 1982-83, 112-118
368.1.36 Translated into Italian by Amalia Pezzali as Śāntideva e il bodhicaryāvatāra. Bologna 1982. Contains translation of the kārikās of the Śikṣaṣamuccaya.
368.1.37 Translated into Italian by Raniero Gnoli in TBIS 427-526
368.1.37.1 Edited, with Prajñākaramati's Panjika, by Divyaraja Vajracarya. Lalitapur, Nepal 1986
368.1.38 Chiko Ishida, "Some new remarks on the Bodhicaryāvatāra", JIBSt 37.1, 1988, 34-37
368.1.39 Chapter 9 translated as Transcendent Wisdom by H.H. the Dalai Lama Tensin Gyatso. Edited by B. Alan Wallace. Ithaca 1988
368.1.40 Edited, with Prajñākaramati's Pañjikā, by Dwarikadas Sastri. Varanasi 1988, 2001
368.1.40.1 Edited by Ram Shankar Tripathi. Leh 1989
368.1.41 Edited and translated by Parmananda Sharma. Two volumes. New Delhi 1990
368.1.42 T.R.Sharma, "Śāntideva's criticism of Vijñānavāda and bodhicitta", Glory of Knowledge 202-206
368.1.43 Mieko Kajihara, "On the pariṇāmana chapter of the Bodhicaryāvatāra", JIBSt 40.2, 1991, 25-28
368.1.43.1 H.S.Prasad, "Śāntideva on roots and resolutions of violence", PGI 233-240
368.1.44 Paul Williams, "On prakṛtinirvāṇa and prakṛtinirvṛta in the Bodhicaryāvatāra: a study in the Indo-Tibetan commentarial tradition", AS 46.1, 1992, 516-550
368.1.44.1 Wisdom: Two Buddhist Commentaries on the Ninth Chapter of Shantideva's Bodhicaryavatara. Peyzac-de-Moustier, France 1992, 1993
368.1.44.3 Translated into French by Georges Driessens, Vivre en héros pour l'éveil: Bodhisattvācaryāvatāra. Paris 1993
368.1.44.5 Edited by Paramanand Singh. Varanasi 1993
368.1.44.7 Lobzang Teng'ye Geshe, Sur l'ocean du mahāyāna: commentaire du Bodhisattvacharyāvatāra de Shāntideva. Marzens 1993
368.1.45 Paul Williams, "On altruism and rebirth: philosophical comments on Bodhicaryāvatāra 8:97-8", BF 3, 1994, 307-332
368.1.45.5 Bstan-dzin-rgya-mtsho (Dalai Lama XIV), A Flash of Lightnin in the Dark of Night: A Guide to the Bodhisattva's Way of Life. Boston 1994
368.1.46 Akira Saito, "On the textual problem of Śāntideva's Bodhi(sattva)caryāvatāra: with special reference to Chapter 9 entitled "Reflection of Wisdom (Prajñāpāramitā)" (summary). ToG 87, 1994, 11-12
368.1.47 Translated by Kate Crosby and Andrew Skilton. Oxford 1995, 1996, 1998
368.1.47.0 Selections from the first four chapters translated by Luis O. Gomez as "A Mahāyāna liturgy", BudinP 183-196
368.1.47.1 Paul Williams, "Identifying the object of negation: on Bodhicaryāvatāra 9:140 (Tib. 139)", AS 49, 1995, 969-985
368.1.48 Chiko Isida, "Action and its result in the Bodhicaryāvacāra", JIBSt 44.2, 1996, 23-28
368.1.48.5 Translated into French in Bstan-dzin-rgyu-mtsho (Dalai Lama XIV), Tant que durera l/espace. Paris 1996
368.1.49 Igor de Rachewiltz (ed.), The Mongolian Tanjur Version of the Bodhicaryāvatāra. Wiesbaden 1996
368.1.50 Vesna A. and B. Alan Wallace, A Guide to the Bodhisattva Way of Life. Ithaca, N.Y. 1997
368.1.50.3 Bstan-dzin-rgya-mtsho, Healing Anger: The Power of Patience from a Buddhist Perspective. Ithaca, N.Y. 1997
368.1.50.5 Edited by R.S.Tripathi. Avalokitesvara Series 6, 1998
368.1.51 Paul Williams, Altruism and Reality: Studies in the Philosophy of the Bodhicaryavatara. Richmond, Surrey 1998
368.1.51.3 P. Williams, "The selfless removal of pain--a critical glance at Śāntideva's argument in Bodhicaryāvatāra 8:101-103", ITaur 23-24, 1998-99, 321-350
368.1.51.4 Kate Crosby, "Blasphemie und Sakrileg in Buddhismus in Geschichte und Gegenwart mis besdonerer Berucksichtigung des Verses Bodhicaryāvatāra 6.64", BGG 207-221
368.1.51.5 Siglinde Dietz, "Śāntideva's Bodhicaryāvatāra--das Werter wirken des Werkes dargestellt an hand der Uberlieferungsgeschichte des Textes und seiner Kommentare", BGG 25-42
368.1.51.6 Tudolf Kaschewsky, "Die 'Vollkommenheiten' im BCA und seinem tibetichen Kommentariem", BGG 43-60
368.1.51.6.5 Anne MacDonald, "Zum Konzept dr Leeheit in BCa", bgg 61-80
368.1.51.7 Oliver Peterson (Gelan Dschampa Tardsin), "Das 7. Kapitel uber das Tatkraft in Śāntideva's Bodhicaryāvatāra", BGG 145-170
368.1.51.8 David Seyfort Ruegg, "Bodhi(sattva)caryāvatāra als Lehrschrift und Vorhaben. Zum Theme Ritual, Religion, Philosophie und Mystik im Buddhismus", BGG 111-128
368.1.51.9 Lambert Schmithausen, "Nichtsiebst, Leerheis und altruistische Ethik im Bodhicaryāvatāra", BGG 129-144
3668.1.51.9.1 Jan-Ulrich Sotisch, "Das ritual der Entschlussfassung im Bodhicaryāvatāra (Kap. II und III)", BGG 11-24
368.1.52 Francis Brassard, The Concept of Altruism in Śāntideva's Bodhicaryāvatāra . Albany, N.Y. 2000. Reviewed and discussed by Ludovic Viévard in Studia Asiatica III, 1-2, Bucarest, 2002
368.1.52.5 Akira Saito, A Study of the Dun-huan Recension of the Bodhisattvacaryāvatāra. Mio University 2000
368.1.53 Mark Siderits, "The reality of altruism: reconstruction of Śāntideva. A review of Altruism and Reality: Studies in the Philosophy of the Bodhicaryāyavatāra by Paul Williams, with discussion", PEW 50, 2000, 412-459
368.1.55 Akira Saito, "Remarks on the Tabo manuscript of the Bodhisattvacaryāvatāra", Tabo2 175-190
368.1.58 Paul Williams, "Bodhicaryāvatāra", EnB 1, 2001, 53-54
368.1.59 Translated by Neil Elliott under the guidance of Gesha Kelson Gyatso in Guide to the Bodhisattva's Way of Life: How to Enjoy a Life of Great Meaning and Altruism. Ulverston, England; Glen Spay, N.Y, 2002
368.1.59.5 Translated into French by Stéphane Arguillére, L'opalescent joyau:=Nor-bu Ke-ta-ka: commentaire du neuvieme chapitre du Bodhicaryāvatāra du Śāntideva. Paris 2004
368.1.60 Chiko Ishida, "On philosophical views of the Bodhisattvacaryāvatāra", JIBSt 52.2, 2004, 32-37
368.1.61 Karl Brunnhölzl, The Center of the Sunlit Sky: Madhyamaka in the Kagyu tradition including a translation of Pawa Rinpoche's commentary on the knowledge section of Śāntideva's The Entrance to the Bodhisattva's Way of Life (Bodhicaryāvatāra). Ithaca, N.Y. 2004
368.1.62 Akira Saito, "Notes on the interpretation of Bodhi(sattva)caryāvatāra V. 104-106", GJWDJ 135-148
368.1.62.5 Translated into Berman by Diego Hangartner, Anweitungen auf dem Weg zur Gluckseligkei: Bodhicaryāvatāra. Frankfurt am Main 2005
368.1.63 Paul Willliams, "Śāntideva", EnB 2, 2004, 749
368.1.65 Geshe Yeshe Tobden, The Way of Awakening: a commentary on Śāntideva's Bodhicaryāvatāra. Boston 2005
368.1.68 M. G. Chitkar, A World Faith: Bodhicaryāvatāra: Governing the Bodhisattva's Way of Life. Encyclopedia of Buddhism Vol. 18, 2007
368.1.69 Lambert Schmithausen, "Nichtselbst, Leerheit und altruistische Ethik im Bodhicaryāvatāra", EMV 551-570
368.1.70 Geri Larkin, Plant Seed, Pull Weed: Nurturing the Garden of Your Life. San Francisco 2008
2.Saptamaithunasaṃyuktasūtra
368.2.1 Michael Hahn, "Das Saptamaithunasaṃyuktasūtra: ein Sūtra des Ekottarikāgama", BIEW 205-244
3.Sūtrasamuccaya (Mādhyamika)
368.3.1 Moriz Winternitz, "Beitrag zur Buddhistischen Sanskrit-literatur: Ist Śāntideva der Verfasser eines Sūtrasamuccaya?", WZKM 26, 1912, 246-248
368.3.2 Anukula Chandra Banerjee, "The Sūtrasamuccaya", IHQ 17, 1941, 121-126
368.3.3 Shoshin Ichishima, "The rareness of great compassion in the Sūtrasamuccaya", JIBSt 48.2, 1997, 19-23
368.3.4 Bhkkhu Pasadika, "Tib J 380, a Dunhuang manuscript fragment of the Sūtrasamuccaya", BVSK 483-494
4.Bhāṣya on Vasubandhu's Triṃśikā
368.4.1 Shuyu Kanaoka, "Śāntideva's attitude toward vijñāna theory", JIBSt 20, 1962, 345-350
4A.Siksasamuccaya
See a47.10:2,8; 174.3.23; 368.1.36
368.4A.0 U. Wogihara, "Contributions to the study of the Śikṣāsamuccaya derived from Chinese sources", LM n.s. 5, 1904: 98-103, 309-215; 7, 1906, 255-261
368.4A.1 Edited by Cecil Bendall. BBudh 1, 1890, 1899, 1902; Osnabruck 1970; Delhi 1971, 1992
368.4A.2 Translated by Cecil Bendall and William Henry Denham Rouse. London 1922; Delhi 1981
368.4A.2.5 Edited by P.L.Vaidya. Buddhis Sanskrt Texts 11 (Darbhanga 1961)
368.4A.2.8 Leigh Ann Bastien, The Bodhisattva and the Ideal of Moral Wisdom in Śāntideva's Śiksāsamuccaya. M.A.Thesis, McMaster University 1982
368.4A.3 Jurg Hedinger, Aspekte der Schulung in der Laufbahn eines Bodhisattva: dargestellt nach dem Siksasamuccaya des Santideva. Wiesbaden 1984
368.4A.4 Konrad Klaus, "Einige textkritische und exegetischeBemerkungen zu Śāntideva's Śikṣāsamuccaya (Kapitel XII und XIII)", BVSK 397-406
368.4A.5 Sections translated by Cecil Bendall in TMW 50-54
368.4A.6 Suzanne Petra Mrozik, The Relationship between Morality and the Body in Monastic Training according to the Śikṣāsamuccaya. Ph.D.Thesis, Harvard University 1998
368.4A.6.5 Barbra R. Clayton, Ethics in the Śikṣaṣāmuccaya: a study in Mahāyāna morality. Ph.D.Thesis, Faculty of Religious Studies (London?), 2001
368.4A.7 Barbra Clayton, "Compassion as a matter of fact: the argument for no-self in Śāntideva's Śikṣāsamuccaya", ContB 2, 2001, 83-98
368.4A.8 Richard Mahoney, Of the Progress of the Bodhisattva: the Bodhisattva image in the Śikṣaṣāmuccaya. M.A.Thesis, U. of Canterbury, 2002
368.4A.9 Keikyo Nakanukudo, "Bharacaryāvidhi in the Śikṣāsamuccaya", JIBSt 53.1, 2004, 4-7
368.4A.10 Kazunri Sasaki, "A precursory phrase of Tantra: definition of bodhicitta in Śāntideva's Śikṣāsamuccaya", JIBSt 53.2, 2005, 38-40
368.4A.12 Barbra R. Clayton, Moral Theory in Śāntideva's Śikṣāsamuccaya: Cultivating the Fruits of Virtue. London 2006
368.4A.14 Kazunori Sasaki, "On the Sanskrit manuscript of the Śikṣasamuccaya: Vibhuṭicandra as the scribe and transporter", JIBSt 55.3, 2007, 251
5.General
See a309.2.1
368.5.1 Haraprasad Sastri, "Śāntideva", IA 42, 1913, 49-52
368.5.2 Amalia Pezzali, "Śāntideva, a mystic of Buddhism", Proceedings of the 9th International Congress for the History of Religions 1958 (published Tokyo 1960), 398-402
368.5.3 Amalia Pezzali, Śāntideva, Mystique Bouddhiste des VIIe et VIIIe Siècles. Firenze 1968
368.5.4 J.W.de Jong, "La legende de Śāntideva", IIJ 16, 1974, 161-183
368.5.5 Hammalava Saddhatissa, "Śāntideva and the Bodhisattva ideal", BudPhilCult 93-100
368.5.6 Angraj Chaudhury, "Ācārya Śāntideva's humanism", EBPL 47-54
368.5.7 T.R.Sharma, "The philosophical basis of worship in the works of Śāntideva", AIBP 126-135
368.5.8 Akira Saito, "Śāntideva in the history of Mādhyamika philosophy", BudIA 1996, 257-263
368.5.12 Richard P. Hayes, "Śāntideva", EBuddhsm 667-668
369.Maṇḍana Miśra (690)
1.Bhāvanāviveka (Pūrvamīmāṃsā)
369.1.1 Edited, with Umbeka's commentary, by Ganganatha Jha. Two parts. POWSBT 6, 1922-23
369.1.2 Erich Frauwallner, "Bhāvanā und vidhi bei Maṇḍanamiśra", WZKM 45, 1938, 212-232
369.1.3 V.A.Ramaswami Sastri and K.A.Subrahmanya Sastri, "Maṇḍanamiśra's Bhāvanāviveka--a study", PVKF 408-410
369.1.4 Edited, with Nārāyaṇa Bhaṭṭa's Viṣamagranthibhedikā, by V.A.Ramaswami Sastri and K.A.Subrahmania Sastri. AnUSS 16, 1952
369.1.5 Edited and translated by V.P.Bhatta, Maṇḍana Miśra's Distinction of the Activity (Bhāvanāviveka). Delhi 1994
2.Brahmasiddhi (Advaita)
See a363.1.3
369.2.1 Summarized in Dasgupta II, 87-98
369.2.2 Edited and translated by P.P.S.Sastri and S.Suryanarayana Sastri. Two volumes. Unpublished, handwritten ms. Madras University 1936
369.2.3 Edited, with Śaṅkhapāṇi's Vyākhyā, by S.Kuppuswami Sastri. MGOS 4, 1937. Introduction reprinted in KSBC 23-65. Reprinted Delhi 1984
369.2.4 S.S.Suryanarayana Sastri, "Maṇḍana and bhavādvaita", PQ 12, 1936. Also JIH 15, 1936, 320-329. Reprinted CPSSS 272-281
369.2.5 S.Suryanarayana Sastri, "Brahmādvaita of Maṇḍana Miśra", KK 3, 1936, 504-507
369.2.6 T.M.P.Mahadevan, "Can difference be perceived?", PQ 14, 1938, 142-151
369.2.7 S.S.Hasurkar, "The concept of transcendental reality as developed by Maṇḍanamiśra", PB 63, 1958: 275, 324, 359, 413
369.2.8 R.Balasubrahmanian, A Study of Maṇḍanamiśra's Brahmasiddhi. Ph.D.Thesis, University of Madras 1960. Contains partial translation. Selection in SBAV 229-241
369.2.9 Shoren Ihara, "A pratibhā theory found in Maṇḍanamiśra's Brahmasiddhi" (in Japanese with English summary). HHKKR 97-l09
369.2.10 R.Balasubramanian, "Jīvanmukti: a new interpretation", JOI 12, 1962, 119-129
369.2.11 R.Balasubrahanian, "The concept of avidyā", IPA 2, 1966, 233-237
369.2.12 Ramaprasad Bhattachasrya, "A note on Maṇḍana's Advaitavāda", JDHUB 1, 1968, 140-143
369.2.13 Siegfried Lienhard, "Einige Bemerkungen über Śabdabrahman und Vivarta bei Bhavabhūti", WZKSOA 12-13, 1968-69, 53-64
369.2.14 Brahmakāṇḍa edited and translated into German by Tilmann Vetter in Maṇḍanamiśra's Brahmasiddhiḥ--Brahmakāṇḍa Übersetzung, Einleitung und Anmerkungen. OAWV 7, 1969
369.2.15 Partly translated into French by Madeleine Biardeau, La Philosophie de Maṇḍana Miśra vue à partir de la Brahmasiddhi. Paris 1969
369.2.16 Allen Wright Thrasher, The Advaita of Maṇḍana Miśra's Brahmasiddhi. Ph.D.Thesis, Harvard University 1972
369.2.17 R. Balasubramanian, Advaita Vedānta. MUSS 23, 1976
369.2.18 Allen Wright Thrasher, "Maṇḍana Miśra on the indescribability of avidyā", WZKSOA 21, 1977, 219-238
369.2.19 Allen Wright Thrasher, "Maṇḍana Miśra's theory of vikalpa", WZKSOA 22, 1978, 133-158
369.2.20 Summarized by Allen Thrasher, EnIndPh3, 1981, 346-419
369.2.21 Allen W. Thrasher, "Vivarta according to Maṇḍana Miśra", WZKSOA 25, 1981, 217-230
369.2.22 S.S.Sastry, "Maṇḍana Miśra and Brahma Siddhi", TL 5.4, 1982, 4-7
369.2.22.1 R. Balasubramanian, A Study of the Brahmasiddhi of Mandana Misra. Varanasi 1983
369.2.23 Allen Wright Thrasher, The Advaita Vedānta of Brahma-siddhi. Delhi 1993
369.2.24 G. Sundara Ramaiah, "The post-Śaṃkara thought: the three prasthānas and Brahmasiddhi", JPS 2.1, 1994, 29-38
369.2.27 Edited by Kedaranatha Tripathi. New Delhi 1999
369.2.30 Pavel Sajdek, "Mandana Miśra's conception of bliss", CracowIS 227-234
3.Mīmāṃsānukramaṇikā (Pūrvamīmāṃsā)
369.3.1 Edited, wiith Gaṅganātha Jhā's Mīmāṃsāmaṇḍana, by Dundhiraja Sastri. ChSS 68, 1928, 1930, 1986
369.3.2 Edited by Pattabhirama Sastri. New Delhi 1983
369.3.6 Hugh Nicholson, "Apologetics and philosophy in Maṇḍana Miśra's Brahmasiddhi", JIP 30, 2002, 575-596
4.Sphoṭasiddhi (Grammarian)
See a363.1.15
369.4.0 Edited by K. Sambasiva Sastri. TSS 89, Trivandrum 1927
369.4.1 Edited, with Ṛṣiputra Parameśvara's Gopālikā, by S.K.Ramanatha Sastri. MUSS 6, 1931
369.4.2 Edited and translated into French by Madeleine Biardeau as La Demonstration du Sphoṭa. PIFI 13. Pondichery 1958
369.4.3 Edited and translated by K.A.Subramania Iyer. Poona 1966
369.4.4 Summarized by G.B.Palsule, Harold G. Coward, and Karl H. Potter, EnIndPh 5, 1990, 181-192
369.4.5 Kengo Harimoto, "Patañjaliśāstravivaraṇa 3.17, Sphoṭasididhi k. 27 and Brahmasūtrabhāṣya 1.3.28", JIBSt 41.2, 1993, 25-27
369.4.6 Michiya Kawajiri, "The meaning of the term abheda in Sphoṭasiddhi", JIBSt 45.2, 1997, 5-8
369.4.7 Usha Rajhore, Sphoṭasiddhi of Maṇḍana Miśra, a Critical Study. Delhi 2000
5.Vibhramaviveka
369.5.1 Edited by S.Kuppuswami Sastri and T.R.V.Dikshitar. MOS 1, 1927, 1932. Kuppuswami Sastri's introduction reprinted in KSBC 66-73
369.5.2 Edited and translated into German by Lambert Schmithausen, Maṇḍanamiśra's Vibhramavivekaḥ. Mit einer Studie Zur Entwicklung der indischen Irrtumslehre. OAWV 2, 1965
6.Vidhiviveka (Pūrvamīmāṃsā)
369.6.1 Edited, with Vācaspati Miśra's Nyāyakaṇikā, by Rama Sastri Tailanga. Pan n.s. 25, 1903 - 28, 1906. Reprinted Banaras 1907
369.6.2 Edited, with Vācaspati Miśra's Nyāyakaṇikā, by Mahaprabhu Lal Gosvami. PBS 8, 1978, 1986
369.6.3 D.V.Garge, "On the meaning of vidhi with reference to Maṇḍanamiśra", PWIAI 149-154
369.6.4 Edited, with Vācaspati Miśra's Nyāyakaṇikā, by Srimohan Bhattacharya. CalSktColRS 93, 1980; 120, 1981
369.6.5.Kanchana Natarajan, Vidhi Viveka of Maṇḍana Miśra: Understanding Vedic Injunctions. Delhi 1995
369.6.6 Edited with Vacaspati Misra's Nyayakanika and Paramesvara's Jusadhvankarani and Svaditankarani, by Elliot M. Stern. Four volumes. Ph.D.Thesis, U. of Pennsylvania 1988; Ann Arbor 1989
7.General
See a344.9.11; 379.67:444,470,510
369.7.1 Mysore Hiriyanna, "Sureśvara and Maṇḍanamiśra", JRAS 1923, 259-263 - 1924, 96-97
369.7.2 V.N .Sastri, "Maṇḍana and Bhavabhūti", JOR 54, 1925, 55 ff.
369.7.3 P.V.Kane, "The chronological postion of Maṇḍana, Umbeka, Bhavabhūti, Sureśvara", JASBo n.s. 3, 1928, 289-293
369.7.4 D.C.Bhattacharya, "Maṇḍana, Sureśvara and Bhavabhūti: the problem of their identity", IHQ 7, 1931, 301-308
369.7.5 A.Rai Bahadur Amarnath Ray, "A note on Sureśvara and Maṇḍana Miśra", IHQ 7, 1931, 632
369.7.6 Ganganatha Jha, "Is the equation Maṇḍana Miśra = Sureśvara correct?", MimP 1.1, 1936, 7
369.7.7 S.Kuppuswami Sastri, "Maṇḍana-Sureśvara equation in the history of Advaita", ABORI 18, 1936-37, 121-157
369.7.8 S.Suryanarayana Sastri, "Maṇḍana and Sureśvara", JMU 11, 1939, 30-40. Also CPSSS 281-292
369.7.9 P.P.S.Sastri, "Problems of identity--Maṇḍana Miśra--Sureśvara", JSS 2.6, 1940-41, 5 pp. Also Bhaktakusumanjali 3-5
369.7.10 David Seyfort Ruegg, "On the term buddhivipariṇāma and the...of illusory change", IIJ 2, 1958, 271-283
369.7.11 S.S.Hasurkar, "Maṇḍana Miśra's views on error", ALB 23, 1959, 19-38
369.7.12 R.Balasubramanian, "Identity of Maṇḍanamiśra", JAOS 82, 1962,
369.7.13 Shoren Ihara, "The date of Maṇḍanamiśra" (summary). SKenk 179, 1964, 62
369.7.14 K.Kunjunni Raja, "A so-called view of Maṇḍana on word-meaning discussed by the Navyanyāya school", KAG 180-181. Also CIDO 26, 444-448
369.7.15 R.Balasubramanian, "Maṇḍanamiśra", PA 90-99
369.7.16 K.Kunjunni Raja, "The date of Maṇḍanamiśra", Pratibhanam 85-86
369.7.17 V.Swaminathan, "On ahaṃkāra -- Maṇḍana Miśra and Śaṃkarācārya", JOR 40-41, 1970-72, 105-116
369.7.18 Allen Wright Thrasher, "The dates of Maṇḍana Miśra and Śaṃkara", WZKSOA 23, 1979, 117-140
369.7.19 K.Kunjunni Raja, "The date of Maṇḍanamiśra", Rajasudha 76-79
369.7.20 Jnanananda Bharati, "Śaṃkara's confrontation with Maṇḍana Miśra", Dilip 9.1, 1983, 6-8
369.7.21 E.R.Sreekrsna Sarma, "Bhartṛhari and Maṇḍana", ALB 49, 1985, 66-78
369.7.21.1 Fernando Tola, "On the date of Maṇḍana Miśra and Śaṃkara and their doctrinal relation", ABORI 70, 1990, 37-46
369.7.22 Ramaprasad Bhattacharya, "Maṇḍana the monist", Prajnajyoti 349-354
369.7.22.1 Rabindra Kumar Pande, "Maṇḍana on avidyānivṛtti", JOI 40, 1991, 229-234. Reprinted RKBSSS 114-121
369.7.23 K.Kunjunni Raja, "On the dates of Śaṃkara and Maṇḍana", ALB 55, 1991, 104-118
369.7.24 R.T.Vyas, "Maṇḍana on avidyāvṛtti", JOI 40, 1991, 229-234
369.7.25 Ramaprasad Bhattacharya, "Maṇḍana Miśra--an advocate of sadadvaitavāda", Corpus 106-110
369.7.26 P. Gopalakrishnan, "Maṇḍana Miśra and Śaṃkara", TL 17.1, 1994, 36-38
369.7.30 R. Balasubramanian, "Maṇḍana and Sureśvara: two complementary poles", AdV 175-241
369.7.33 Jonardon Ganeri, "Can error lead to truth? The procedural epistemology of Maṇḍana Miśra", Parampara 167-177
370.(Bhaṭṭaputra) Jayamiśra (690) (NCat IV, 223)
1.Śārkarikā on Kumārila's Ślokavārttika (NCat VII, l86)
See e363.1.2
371.Śrīgupta (690)
1.Tattvāvatāravṛtti (NCat VIII, 80)
372.Aviddhakarṇa *(700)* (NCat I, 426-427)
1.General
372.1.1 Esther A. Solomon, "Aviddhakarṇa--a forgotten Naiyāyika", PAIOC 25, 1969, 337-352
372.1.2 Cf. EnIndPh2, 1977, 338-340
373.Prabhākara (700)
1.Bṛhatī on Śabara's Mīmāṃsāsūtrabhāṣya
See e22.1.42. s22.1.27
373.1.1 Ganganatha Jha, "Prabhākara's theory of error", CERGB 167-178
373.1.2 S. Kuppuswami Sastri, "The Prābhākara school of Karma Mīmāṃsā (I-II)", PAIOC 2, 1922, 407-412. Reprinted in KSBC 95-103
373.1.3 Edited, with Śālikanātha Miśra's Ṛjuvimalāpañcikā and Bhāṣyapariśiṣṭa, by S.K.Ramanatha Sastri. Three parts in MUSS 3 (renumbered 24-25), 1934. Part 4 edited by S.Subrahmanya Sastri, MUSS 24, 1962
373.1.4 J.C.Mookerjee, "Prabhākara's theory of error", IHQ 26, 1950, 193-200. Also FRSD 279-286
373.1.5 Shri Nivas Shastri, "Cognition (jñāna) according to Prabhākara Miśra", VIJ 5, 1967, 71-76
373.1.6 N.Veezhinathan, "On the significance of a sentence according to the Prābhākara school", TVOS 2, 1977, 332-341
373.1.7 Tara Chatterjee, "Did Prabhākara hold the view that knowledge is self-manifesting?", JIP 7, 1979, 267-276. Reprinted KFIP 1-9
373.1.7.5 K.T.Pandurangi, "Concept of svarūpabheda in Prabhākara and Dvaita", Surabhi 170-175
373.1.8 Mark Siderits, "The Prābhākara Mīmāṃsā theory of related designation", APCP 253-298
373.1.9 M. Srimannarayana Murti, "Import of the negative sentence according to Prabhākara", Prajnajyoti 217-225
373.1.10 Citrarekha V. Kher, "Buddhism as presented by Prabhākara in the Bṛhatī", BPBS 465-474
373.1.10.5 Kiyotaka Yoshimizu, Der 'Organismus' des geheiligten Veda. Eine Studie des Niyoga-Lehre Prabhākaras mit ausgewohlten Uberstzungen des Bṛhatī. Dissertation Wien 1994
373.1.11 Edited and translated into German in Kiyotaka Yoshimizu, Der "Organismus" des urhaberlosen Veda: ein studie der Niyoga-Lehre Prabhakaras mit ausgewahlten Ubersetzungen der Brhati. Wien 1997
2.Laghvī on Śabara's Mīmāṃsāsūtrabhāṣya
3.General
See a158.1.2; 363.5:5,16,17,25.
373.3.1 T.R.Chintamani, "The works of Prabhākara", JOR 3, 1929, 231-291. Summary in PAIOC 5, 1930, 119-120
373.3.2 K.R.Pisharoti, "Three great philosophers of Kerala", IHQ 5, 1929, 676-692
373.3.3 Rajendra Nath Sharma, "Prabhākara's concept of relation", RelationsIP 169-178
373.3.4 Kalyan Sengupta, "Some reflections on the theory of anvītābhidhāna", EssInP 451-460
374.Siddhasena Divākara (700)
3.Nyāyāvatāra (Jain)
See a268: 5.6.5, 10.40. e374.1.1. et374.1.4
374.3.1 Edited, with extracts from Candraprabhā Sūri's Vivṛti and translated by Satischandra Vidyabhusana. RAR 1.2, 1908, 1-14. Reprinted Calcutta 1909, 1981; Arrah 1915; also in 374.1.4 above
374.3.2 Edited, with Śāntyācārya's Jainatarkavārttika, by Vitthal Sastri. Pan n.s. 36, 1914 - 39, 1917. Reprinted Banaras 1917
374.3.3 Edited and translated, with Sidharṣigaṇi's Vivṛti, by Satischandra Vidyabhusana. LJL 2, 1915
374.3.4 Edited, with Siddharṣigaṇi's Vivṛti and Devabhadra's Ṭippaṇa, by Bhagavandas Harakchand. Ahmedabad, Patan 1917
374.3.5 Edited, with Rājaśekhara Sūri's Ṭippaṇī, by Nemacanda Devacanda and Bhagavan Das. Patan 1917
374.3.6 Edited by Anandasagara Suri. Ahmedabad 1919
374.3.7 Edited by Sukhlalji Sanghvi. Ahmedabad 1926
374.3.8 Edited, with Siddharṣigaṇi's Vivṛti and Devabhadra's Ṭippaṇī, by P.L.Vaidya. Bombay 1928
374.3.9 Edited, with Śāntisūri's Jainatarkavārttika, by Dalsukh Malvania. SJS 20, 1949
374.3.10 Edited, with Siddharṣigaṇi's Vivṛti, by V.M.S.Acharya. Bombay 1950
374.3.11 Edited and translated in Satkari Mookerjee, "A critical and comparative study of Jaina logic and epistemology on the basis of the Nyāyāvatāra of Siddhasena Divākara", VIRB I, 1-144
374.3.12 Edited, with Devabhadra's Ṭippaṇī and Siddharṣigaṇi's Ṭīkā. VIRB I, 95 pp.
374.3.13 M.A. Dhaky, "The date and authorship of Nyāyāvatāra", Nirgrantha 1, 1995, 39-49
374.3.15 Satya Ranjan Banerjee, "Siddhasena Divākara and his Nyāvatāra", JainJ 32, 1998, 93-114
374.3.17 Piotr Balcerowicz, "On the date of the Nyāyāvatāra", Studia Indologiczny 7, 2000, 17-58
374.3.18 Bansidhar Bhatt, "A study in the Nyāyāvatāra of Siddhasena", Vividha 65-82
374.3.21 Piotr Balcerowicz, "Two Siddhasenas and the authorship of the Nyāyāvatāra and the Sanmatitarkaprakarana", JIP 29, 2001, 351-378
374.3.21.5 Piotr Balcerowicz, "On the relationship of the Nyāyāvatāra and the Sanmatitarkaprakaraṇa", ITaur 29, 2003, 29-80
374.3.22 Summarized by K.H.Potter. EnIndPh10, 2007, 234-238
374A.Author Unknown (700?)
1.Vijñaṇabhairava (Kashmir Saiva)
374A.1.1 Edited with the commentary of Kṣemarāja and Śivopadhyaya by Madhusudana S. Kaul and Mukunda Rama Sastri. KSTS 8-9, 1918
379A.1.2 Edited with Anandabhatta's Kaumudī by Mukunda Rama Sastri. Srinagar 1918
374A.1.3 Edited and translated into French by Lilian Silburn. Paris 1961
374A.1.4 Edited by Vrajavallabha Dvivedi. Delhi 1978, 1984
374A.1.5 Edited and translated by Jaideva Singh. Delhi 1979, 1981
374A.1 K.S.Avasthi, Best Techniques of Yoga (as in Vigyan Bhairav Tantra and Upanishads. Hardoi 1981
374A.1.6 Edited with Śivopādhyāya's Vṛtti by Bapulal Ajnana. ChaukhambaSurbharati Granthamala 194, Varanasi 1991
374A.1.7 Edited and translated by Jaidev Singh as The Yoga of Delight, Wonder and Astonishment. Albany, N.Y. 1991
374A.1.8 Edited and translated into German by Wilhelmine Keyserling, Das Tantra der Befreiung.. Sudergellersen 1994
374A.1.9 Muktananda, Nothing Exists That Is Not Śiva. Commentaries on the Śiva-sūtra, Vijñānabhairava, Gurugītā and other sacred texts. South Fallsburg, N.Y. 1997
374A.1.10 Edited and translated into French by Daniel Odier as Tantra de la connaissance supreme. Paris 1998, 2004. In Italian, Vicenza 1999, 2003
374A.1.11 Edited and translated by Lakshman Joo as The Practice of Centring Awareness. Varanasi 2002
374A.1.12 Edited and translated by Satyasangananda Saraswati as Sri Vijnana Bhairava Tantra: the Ascent.Munger, Bihar 2003
374A.1.13 Bettina Bäumer, "Attaining the form of the void: śūnya in Vijñānabhairava", VFHBC 159-170
374A.1.14 Edited and translated into German by Bettina Baumer. Grafing 2004
375.Jayarakṣita (700)
1.Sphuṭārtha Śrīghanacavasaṃgrahaṭīkā
375.1.1 Sanghasen Singh, A Study of the Sphuṭārtha Śrīghanacavasaṃgraha-ṭīkā. TSWS 24, 1968, 1983
377.(Bhaṭṭa) Umbeka (710) (NCat II, 397)
1.Commentary on Maṇḍana Miśra's Bhāvanāviveka
See e369.1.1
2.Commentary on Kumārila's Ślokavārttika
See e22.1.54
3.General
See a369.7.3
377.3.1 V.V.Mirashi, "Bhavabhūti and Umbeka", PAIOC 19.2, 1957, 45-51
377.3.2 V.V.Mirashi, "Dr. Kane on Bhavabhūti and Umbeka", SKBCV 91-94
377.3.3 K.Kunjunni Raja, "Uṃbeka Bhaṭṭa", JOR 40-41, 1970-72, 93-96
378.Śākyamati or Śakyamati (710)
1.Ṭīkā on Dharmakīrti's Pramāṇavārttika
See e344.4.14.1
378.1.1 E.Steinkellner, "Philological remarks on Śākyamati's Pramāṇavārttikaṭīkā", SzumJB 283-296
378.1.1.1 Edited by M. Inami, K. Matsuda and T. Tani. Tokyo 1992
378.1.1.2 Masahiro Inami, A Study on Pramāṇavārttikaṭīkā by Śākyabuddhi. Studia Tibetica 23. Tokyo 1992
378.1.2 Ernst Steinkellner, "Śākyabuddi's commentary on Pramāṇavārttika I. 3 and its Vṛtti", WZKSOA 38, 1994, 379-387
378.1.5 Kensho Okada, "An aspect of Śākyabuddhi's interpretation of apoha theory", JIBSt 54.3, 2006, 224-225
379.Śaṃkara (Ācārya) (710)
1.Adhyātmapaṭala
379.1.0 Edited by T. Ganapati ?Sastri. TSS 41, 1915
379.1.1 Trevor Leggett, The Chapter of the Self. London 1978
379.1.2 Translated by R.S.Narasimha as Yoga of Right Living for Self-Realization. Ootacamund 1982
2.Advaitānubhūti (Advaita)
379.2.1 Edited by Ananda Kumara Roy Chaudhuri. Calcutta 1873
379.2.2 Edited by Jaganmohana Tarkalamkara. Calcutta 1875-76
379.2.3 Edited in WSS
379.2.4 Edited in Telugu characters. Madras 1921
379.2.5 Edited in MWS
379.2.6 Edited in SSG 11, 353-364
379.2.7 Edited and translated, Oslo 1995
3.Advaitapañcaratna or (Anubhava)Pañcaratna (two texts by this name, not distinguished here) (NCat I, 127; II, 49)
379.3.1 Listed in PSK
379.3.2 Edited, with Śaṃkara's Ātmabodha and Nirvāṇaṣaṭka and Advaitānanda's Dīpikā on Ātmabodha. Bombay 1881
379.3.3 Edited in BSR
379.3.4 Edited in VSS
379.3.5 Translated by S. Venkataramana Iyer. BV 7, 1902: 181 ff.
379.3.6 Edited version, by Vinayaka Lakshama Bhave in Mahārāṣṭrakavi (Poona) 7, 1903-04, 115 pp.
379.3.7 Edited in Vidyavati (Madras) 2.1-3, 1907, 16 pp.
379.3.8 Edited, with Śaṃkara's Dhanyaṣṭaka and Manīṣapañcaka, by Udasi Paramananda. Lucknow 1912
379.3.9 Edited in WSS
379.3.10 Edited in BN
379.3.11 Edited in Telugu characters, with Bālakṛṣṇa Sarasvatī's Kiraṇāvalī. Madras 1914
379.3.12 Edited in Telugu characters. Madras 1923
379.3.13 Edited in MWS
379.3.14 Translated by K.R.Pisharoti. VK 36, 1949-50, 241-242. Same, plus text, PB 56, 1951, 301-305
379.3.15 Edited, with Bālakṛṣṇa Sarasvatī's Kiraṇāvalī, by Surnath Kanjan Pillai. JKUOML 9, 1957, 3: 69-84; 4: 37-48. Reprinted as TSS 190, 1958
379.3.16 Edited in SSG 11, 351-352
379.3.17 Summarized by K.H.Potter in EnIndPh3, 1983, 343-344
4.Bhāṣya on Aitareya Upaniṣad (NCat III, 86)
See e317.1:8,13,15
379.4.1 Edited, with Śaṃkara's Taittirīyopaniṣadbhāṣya and Anandagiri's Tika and Samkara's Svetasvataropanisadbhasya, by E. Roer. BI 6, 1850, 1874
379.4.2 Edited in Telugu characters, with Nārāyaṇa Sarasvatī's Ṭīkā. Madras 1870
379.4.3 Edited, with Śaṃkara's Taittirīyopaniṣadbhāṣya and Nārāyaṇa Sarasvatī's Ṭippaṇas on both, by Jivananda Vidyasagara. Calcutta 1874
379.4.4 Edited with Śaṃkara's Īśopaniṣadbhāṣya by Pitambara. 1879
379.4.5 Edited Calcutta 1881
379.4.6 Edited Banaras 1884
379.4.7 Edited, with Anandagirī's Ṭippaṇa and Vidyāraṇya's Dīpikā, by the Anandasrama pandits. ASS 11, 1889, 1898, 1911, 1921, 1931. Reprinted without Vidyaranya, Punyapattana 1980
379.4.8 Edited Lucknow 1891
379.4.9 Translated by H.M.Bhadramkar. Bombay 1893, 1899; Poona 1922; Delhi 2005
379.4.10 Edited Poona 1892
379.4.11 Introductory section translated in BV 3, 1898, 430-488
379.4.12 Edited by D.Sundararaja Sarma in Vedāntabodhinī (Madras 1908-1910)
379.4.13 Edited in WSS
379.4.13.1 Edited by Chintamani Gangadhara Bhanu. Two volumes. Bombay 1914
379.4.14 Edited by V.V.Bapat. Poona 1920
379.4.15 Edited, with Śaṃkara's Taittirīyopaniṣadbhāṣya, by S.Sitarama Sastri. Madras 1923
379.4.16 Translated, with Śaṃkara's Taittirīyopaniṣadbhāṣya, by S.C.Vidyarnava and M.L.Sandal. SBH 30, 1925
379.4.17 S.K.Belvalkar, "An authentic but unpublished work of Śaṃkarācārya", JASBo n.s. 6, 1930, 241-246
379.4.18 Edited and translated, with Śaṃkara's Bhāṣyas on Īśā, Kaṭha, Kena, Māṇḍūkya, Muṇḍaka, Praśna, Śvetāśvatara, and Taittirīya Upanishads, Nārāyaṇa Sarasvatī's Ṭīkā on Aitareya-Bhāṣya and Ānandagiri's Ṭippaṇa on the rest, by E.Roer. Second edition. Adyar 1931
379.4.19 Edited and translated by D.Venkataramiah. Bangalore 1934; Mysore 1935
379.4.20 Edited by Munilal Gupta. Gorakhpur 1936, 1965
379.4.21 Edited and translated, with Śaṃkara's commentaries on Māṇḍūkya, Muṇḍaka and Praśna Upaniṣads, by Gambhirananda in Eight Upaniṣads, Volume II, Calcutta 1958, 1966. Translation only, Calcutta 1978
379.4.22 M.D.Paradkar, "Similes in Śaṃkara's Bhāṣya on Aitareyopaniṣad", BhV 19, 1959, 71-76
379.4.23 Edited, with Śaṃkara's commentaries on Īśā, Kaṭha, Kena, Chāndogya, Bṛhadāraṇyaka, Māṇḍūkya, Muṇḍaka, Praśna and Taittirīya Upaniṣads, Bhagavadgītā and Brahmasūtras. Varanasi 1964
379.4.24 Edited in SSG 4, 185-230
379.4.25 Summarized by K.H.Potter in EnIndPh3, 1983, 270-277
379.4.28 Edited with Śaṃkara's Taittirīyopaniṣadbhāṣya by Som Raj Gupta. Delhi 1999
5.Ajñānabodhinī or Ātmajñānaprakaraṇa or Adhyātmavidopadeśavidhi or Saṃkṣiptavedāntasarvasvaprakrīyā (Advaita)(NCat I, 152; II, 54)
379.5.1 Edited Calcutta 1874